The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Romaunce of The Sowdone of Babylone and of Ferumbras his Sone who conquerede Rome, by Anonymous This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook. Title: The Romaunce of The Sowdone of Babylone and of Ferumbras his Sone who conquerede Rome Author: Anonymous Editor: Emil Hausknecht Release Date: March 19, 2015 [EBook #48531] Language: English Character set encoding: UTF-8 *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROMAUNCE OF THE SOWDONE *** Produced by Meredith Bach, RichardW, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
THE exploits of Charles the Great, who by his achievements as conqueror and legislator, as reformer of learning and missionary, so deeply changed the face of Western Europe, who during a reign of nearly half a century maintained, by his armies, the authority of his powerful sceptre, from the southern countries of Spain and Italy to the more northern regions of Denmark, Poland, and Hungary, must have made a profound and unalterable impression in the minds of his contemporaries, so that for centuries afterwards they continued to live in the memory of the people. Evidence of this high pitch of popularity is given by the numerous chansons de geste or romances, which celebrate the deeds, or are connected with the name, of the great and valiant champion of Christendom.
It is true that the sublime figure of Charlemagne, who with his imaginary twelve peers perpetually warred against all heathenish or Saracen people, in the romances of a later period, has been considerably divested of that nimbus of majestic grandeur, which the composers of the earlier poems take pains to diffuse around him. Whereas, in the latter, the person of the Emperor appears adorned with high corporeal, intellectual, and warlike gifts, and possessed of all royal qualities; the former show us the splendour of Royalty tarnished and debased, and the power of the feodal vassals enlarged to the prejudice of the royal authority. Roland, in speaking of Charlemagne, says, in the Chanson de Roland, l. 376:—
and again the same Roland says of the Emperor, in Guy de Bourgoyne, l. 1061:—
This glorification of the great Christian hero took its rise in France, but soon spread into the neighbouring countries, and before long Charlemagne was celebrated in song by almost all European nations. Indeed, there are translations, reproductions, compilations of French Charlemagne romances to be met with in Italy, Spain, and Portugal, as well as in Scandinavia and Iceland. Even in Hungary and Russia these chansons of the Charlemagne cycle seem to have been known.1
A full account of almost all Charlemagne romances will be found in Gaston Paris’s exhaustive work of the Histoire poétique de Charlemagne (Paris, 1865), and in Léon Gautier’s Epopées françaises (Paris, 1867).
Of all the Charlemagne romances, that of Fierabras or Ferumbras has certainly obtained the highest degree of popularity, as is shown by the numerous versions and reproductions of this romance, from the 13th century down to the present day.
When the art of printing first became general, the first romance that was printed was a prose version of Fierabras; and when the study of mediæval metrical romances was revived in this century, the Fierabras poem was the first to be re-edited.2
The balm of Fierabras especially seems to have been celebrated for its immediately curing any wound; we find it referred to and minutely described in Florian’s Don Quichotte, I. chap. 10. The scene of Fierabras challenging to a combat the twelve peers of France, and of his vaunting offer to fight at once with six (or twelve) of them,3 must also have been pretty familiar to French readers, as the name of Fierabras is met with in the sense of a simple common noun, signifying “a bragging bully or swaggering hector.”4
Rabelais5 also alludes to Fierabras, thinking him renowned enough as to figure in the pedigree of Pantagruel.
In 1833, on a tour made through the Pyrenees, M. Jomard witnessed ‹vii› a kind of historical drama, represented by villagers, in which Fierabras and Balan were the principal characters.6
That in our own days, the tradition of Fierabras continues to live, is evident from the fact, that copies of the Fierabras story, in the edition of the Bibliothèque Bleue, still circulate amongst the country people of France.7 There is even an illustrated edition, published in 1861, the pictures of which have been executed by no less an artist than Gustave Doré. And like Oberon, that other mediæval hero of popular celebrity,8 Fierabras has become the subject of a musical composition. There is an Opera Fierabras composed by Franz Schubert (words by Joseph Kupelwieser) in 1823, the overture of which has been arranged for the piano in 1827, by Carl Czerny.9
The different versions and the popularity of the present romance in France, Italy, Spain, and Germany, having been treated in the Introduction to Sir Ferumbras, we need not repeat it again here.10 As to the popularity of the Fierabras romance in the Netherlands, the following passage from Hoffmann, Horæ Belgicæ (Vratislaviæ, 1830), I. 50, may be quoted here11:—
“Quam notæ Belgis, sec. xiii. et xiv., variæ variarum nationum fabulæ fuerint, quæ ex Gallia septemtrionali, ubi originem ceperunt, translatæ sunt, pauca hæc testimonia demonstrabunt:— . . . . in exordio Sidraci:—12
‘Dickent hebbic de gone ghescouden,
die hem an boeken houden
daer si clene oerbare in leren,
also sijn jeesten van heeren,
van Paerthenopeuse, van Amidase,
van Troijen ende van Fierabrase,
ende van menighen boeken, die men mint
ende daer men litel oerbaren in vint,
ende dat als leghene es ende mere,
ende anders en hebben ghene lere,
danne vechten ende vrowen minnen
ende lant ende steden winnen . . . . . .’—
“Nec rarius tanguntur fabulæ de Carolo Magno, Speculum Historiale, IV. 1. xxix (cf. Bilderdijk, Verscheidenh, I. D. bl. 161–2):—
‘Carel es menichwaerf beloghen
in groten boerden ende in hoghen,
alse boerders doen ende oec dwase,
diene beloghen van Fierabrase,
dat nie ghesciede noch en was . . . .
die scone walsce valsce poeten,
die mer rimen dan si weten,
belieghen groten Caerle vele
in sconen worden ende bispele
van Fierabrase van Alisandre,
van Pont Mautrible ende andre,
dat algader niet en was . . . .’”
That the Fierabras romance must have been well known and highly popular in England and Scotland, may be gathered from the numerous references to this poem in various Middle English works.
Thus the whole subject of the Fierabras romance is found in the following passage, taken from Barbour’s Bruce, ed. Skeat, 3, 435 ss., where the King is described as relating to his followers:—
“Romanys off worthi Ferambrace,
That worthily our-commyn was
Throw the rycht douchty Olywer;
And how the duz Peris wer
Assegyt intill Egrymor,
Quhar King Lawyne lay thaim befor
With may thowsandis then I can say,
And bot elewyn within war thai,
And a woman; and wa sa stad,
That thai na mete thar within had,
Bot as thai fra thair fayis wan.
Y heyte, sua contenyt thai thaim than;
That thai the tour held manlily,
Till that Rychard off Normandy,
Magre his fayis, warnyt the king,
That wes joyfull off this tithing:
For he wend, thai had all bene slayne,
Tharfor he turnyt in hy agayne,
And wan Mantrybill and passit Flagot;
And syne Lawyne and all his flot
Dispitusly discumfyt he:
And deliueryt his men all fre,
And wan the naylis, and the sper,
And the croune that Ihesu couth ber; ‹ix›
And off the croice a gret party
He wan throw his chewalry.”13
In his poem of Ware the Hawk, Skelton (ed. Dyce, I. 162) cites Syr Pherumbras as a great tyrant. He also refers to him in one of his poems against Garnesche, whom he addresses with the following apostrophe:—
The story of the combat between Oliver and Ferumbras is alluded to by Lyndsay, in his Historie of ane Nobil and Wailȝeand Squyer, William Meldrum, ed. Hall, ll. 1313–16:—
“Roland with Brandwell, his bricht brand,
Faucht never better, hand for hand,
Nor Gawin aganis Golibras,
Nor Olyver with Pharambras.”
The tale of the fortified bridge of Mauntrible seems also to have been very well known in England and Scotland. In the Complaint of Scotland, ed. Murray, p. 63, we find the Tail of the Brig of the Mantrible mentioned among other famous romances. In his lampoon on Garnesche, Skelton describes his adversary as being more deformed and uglier than
As has already been mentioned, amongst all the Charlemagne romances the (originally French) romance of Fierabras is remarkable as being one of the first that was rescued from the dust of libraries; and it is worthy of note, in connection with it, that the first printed version was not a French, but a Provençal one, which was published not in France, the birth-place of the romance, but in Germany.
The manuscript of this Provençal version having been discovered by Lachmann in the Library of Prince Ludwig von Oettingen-Wallerstein,15 ‹x› somewhere about the year 1820, the poem was published in 1829 by Immanuel Bekker.16
Raynouard, who drew attention to this edition of the poem in the Journal des Savants, March 1831, supposed this Provençal version to be the original.
Soon after Fauriel discovered at Paris two MSS. of the romance in French, and a third French MS. was found in London,17 by Fr. Michel, in 1838.
In 1852 Fauriel gave an account of the poem in the Histoire Littéraire de la France, par les religieux bénédictins de congregation de Saint-Maur . . . . . continuée par des membres de l’Institut, vol. xxii. p. 196 et seq., where he also investigated the question of the originality of the two versions, without arriving at a final solution; as from the comparison of the French and the Provençal version, no conclusion as to the original could be drawn in favour of either of the two poems.18
As early as 1829 Uhland and Diez had expressed their opinion, that in all probability the Provençal poem was to be looked upon as a reproduction of some French source;19 and in 1839 Edelestand du Méril, in France, had pointed out the French poem as the original of the Provençal version;20 Guessard in his lectures at the Ecole des Chartes, at Paris, had also defended the same opinion; when in 1860, the editors of the French Fierabras21 finally and irrefutably proved the impossibility of considering the Provençal poem as anything but a translation of a French original. ‹xi›
In 1865, Gaston Paris, in his Poetical History of Charlemagne, pointed out that what we have now of the Fierabras romance must be looked upon as a very different version from the old original Fierabras (or Balan) romance, the former being indeed only a portion, considerably amplified and in its arrangement modified, of the old poem, the first portion of which has been lost altogether. Gaston Paris had been led to this supposition by the rather abrupt opening of the Fierabras, which at once introduces the reader in medias res, and by the numerous passages of the Fierabras, which contain allusions and references to preceding events; several of which, being obscure and inexplicable from the context of the Fierabras itself, can only be explained by assuming the existence of an earlier poem.
The main subject of the old Balan or Fierabras romance may be given as follows:—“The Saracens having invaded Rome and killed the Pope, Charlemagne sends, from France, Guy of Burgundy and Richard of Normandy to the rescue of the city, and follows himself with his main army. After a fierce combat between Oliver and Ferumbras, the city is delivered from the Saracens, and a new Pope established.”22 ‹xii›
Of all the events related in the old Balan romance, there is but one which is contained in the Fierabras poem, viz. the combat between Oliver and Ferumbras, and even this has been greatly modified in consequence of the composer’s transferring the scene of action from Italy to Spain. All the other events related in the Fierabras, the love of Floripas and Guy, the capture of the twelve peers, their being besieged in the castle of Agremor, and their deliverance by Charlemagne, and the ultimate wedding of Floripas and Guy are altogether wanting in the original Fierabras [Balan] romance.
Therefore Gaston Paris was right in saying that the Fierabras poem contained only the second part of the earlier poem, the first part of which had not come down to us.
Now it seemed as though this view, which had been clearly ‹xiii› demonstrated and generally adopted, would have to undergo a thorough modification on the discovery of a new Fierabras Manuscript in Hanover. Professor Grœber, having been informed of the existence of that MS. by Professor Tobler, published from it, in 1873, the poem of the Destruction de Rome,23 which in that MS. precedes the Fierabras romance.24 In his Address to the Assembly of German Philologists at Leipzig,25 the same scholar attempted to show that this poem represented the first part of the earlier Balan romance.
This supposition, however, can only be accepted with reserve, and needs a great modification, as by no means all the references to previous events contained in the Fierabras receive explanation in the Destruction, although all such previous events must have been narrated in the original Balan. Moreover, one of these allusions in the Fierabras is in direct contradiction to the contents of the Destruction.
Thus ll. 2237 et seq. of the Fierabras:26—
“.i. chevalier de France ai lontans enamé:
Guis a nom de Borgoigne, moult i a bel armé;
Parens est Karlemaine et Rollant l’aduré.
Dès que je fui à Romme, m’a tout mon cuer emblé,
Quant l’amirans mes peres fist gaster la cité,
Lucafer de Baudas abati ens ou pré,
Et lui et le ceval, d’un fort espiel quarré,”
where Floripas declares that she has seen Guy before Rome when defeating Lukafer, widely differ from the account given in ll. 1355 et seq. of the Destruction, where Guy does not arrive at Rome until after the departure of Laban’s army to Spain.
In the Destruction no clue is given which would enable us to explain why Charles should be constantly applying to Richard in the Fierabras (ll. 112 et seq.) for information about Fierabras, or why Richard, in particular, should know more about Fierabras than any one else. There is no mention in the Destruction of Richard chasing ‹xiv› the Emir before him in the plain of Rome, to which event ll. 3708–9 of the Fierabras27 clearly refer.
“Richars de Normendie au courage aduré,
Qui cacha l’amirant devant Romme ens el pré.”
The allusion contained in l. 2614,28
. . . . “Richart de Normendie,
Cil qui m’ocist Corsuble et mon oncle Mautrie,”
where Richard is said to have slain Corsuble and Mautrie, the uncle of Floripas, is not cleared up by the Destruction, as in the three passages, where Richard is mentioned there (ll. 246, 288, 541), he does not play an active part at all, whereas from Mousket’s analysis of the original Fierabras [Balan] romance, we know how important a part Guy and Richard played in the old poem.29 There Richard and Guy being sent off by Charlemagne as a first succour to the oppressed Romans, succeeded in delivering Château-Miroir, which had been seized by the Saracens. The story of the combat around Château-Miroir, as related in the Destruction, ll. 593 ss., is thoroughly different,30 as besides other variations, there is neither Richard nor Guy concerned in it.
Therefore, as the contents of the Destruction are not identical with Mousket’s analysis of the old Balan romance, and as several passages alluding to events previously described are left unexplained in the Destruction; and as there is even an instance of the Destruction being in contradiction to the Fierabras, the poem of the Destruction de Rome cannot be said to be identical with the first part of the Balan romance.31 ‹xv›
The Provençal version and the Destruction are each printed from unique MSS., the latter from the Hanover MS., the former from the Wallerstein MS. Of the French Fierabras there are seven MSS. known to exist.
As to the English Fierabras romances, there are two versions known to exist:33 the poem of Sir Ferumbras contained in the Ashmole MS. 3334 and the present poem.
In the following we shall attempt to point out the differences of these two versions, and to examine whether there is any relationship between the English and the French poems, and if possible to identify the original of the former.
A superficial comparison of the English poem of Sir Ferumbras with the French romance Fierabras (edd. Krœber and Servois) will suffice at once to show the great resemblance between the two versions. In my Dissertation on the sources and language of the Sowdan of Babylone (Berlin, 1879) I have proved (pp. 30–40) that the Ashmolean Ferumbras must be considered as a running poetical translation of a French original. Since Mr. Herrtage, in the Introduction to his edition of the Ashmole MS. 33, has also pointed out the closeness with which the translator generally followed the original, which he believes to belong to the same type as the Fierabras, edited by MM. Krœber and Servois. “The author has followed his original closely, so far as relates to the course of events; but at the same time he has translated it freely, introducing several slight incidents and modifications, which help to enliven and improve the poem. That he has not translated his original literally, is shown by the fact that the French version consists of only 6219 lines, or allowing for the missing portion of the Ashmole MS., not much more than one-half the number of lines in the latter, and that too, although he has cut down the account of the duel between Oliver and Ferumbras from 1500 to 800 lines, by leaving out Oliver’s attempts at converting the Saracen, Charlemagne’s prayers, &c.”
Now, in my opinion, we ought not to lay too much stress on the fact that the number of lines in the two versions differs, as all translators of poetical works, who wish to follow their original as closely as possible, will easily be able to render it ‘literally’ as long as they write in prose. But adopting a poetical form for their translation, and still pursuing their intention of a close rendering of their original, ‹xvii› they must needs be more diffuse, and the consideration of rhythm and rhyme will compel them sometimes to abandon a quite literal translation, and to be content with a free reproduction. This is also the case with the author of Syr Ferumbras, who, notwithstanding the many passages where the French text is not given ‘literally,’ must be considered as a close rhymed translation of the French poem. The only liberty which we see the English author take sometimes, consists in contracting or amalgamating together those couplets similaires,35 or strophes which contain repetitions.
But not always did the author thus give up his plan of rendering his original closely: occasionally he has such repetitionary lines in the same place as the French poem, as, for instance, in ll. 130 et seq. corresponding to Fierabras, ll. 125 et seq.
The closeness and literalness of his translation is well exemplified by his introduction in an English dress of a great many French words which are unknown, or at least of a most rare occurrence, in English, and which in his translation are found in the same place and context, where the French text has them. This will be best illustrated by juxtaposing the corresponding phrases of the two versions.
Ashmole Ferumbras. | French Fierabras. | ||
---|---|---|---|
312 | Hit ys rewarded ous two betwyne þat Olyuer schal wende and take þe batail | 301 | ‘Nous jujon Olivier, si l’avons esgardé Qu’il fera la bataille au paien deffaé.’ |
330 | Mercy, quaþ he to kyng Charles | 333 | ‘As piés le roy se jete, merchi li a priié.’ |
369 | þat paynede crist | 377 | ‘— dont vos Diex fu penès.’ |
388 | Er y remuvie me of þis place | 392 | ‘Ains que je m’en remue ...’ |
399 | y chalenge wiþ þe to fiȝt | 402 | ‘— je te voel calengier’ |
457 | Parfay, ansuerde erld O. | 449 | ‘Par foi, dist Oliviers ...’ |
533 | þat he ne . . maden ȝelde his body to him creaunt | 548 | ‘se Roland s’i combat, ne faice recréant’ |
537 | wiþ my swerd trenchaunt | 553 | ‘ . . . à m’espée trencant’ |
538 | Sarsyns, said erld O. | 554 | Sarrazins, dist li quans ... |
551 | long man in fourchure | 579 | Il ot l’enfourcéure grant |
558 | a ful gret pite, etc. | 586 | j’ai de toi grand pité, etc. ‹xviii› |
751 | haue mercy of me, iantail knyȝt | 1494 –5 |
— merci li a crié: Gentix hom . . |
781 | to remurie þe of þis place | 1515 | ja par moi n’i seriés . . remués |
817 | he was encombred with F. | 1552 | Mais de F. est . . . encombrés |
922 | þey went forth on a pendant | 1696 | Cil s’entornent fuiant le pendant d’un laris |
947 | wan hure spere gunne to faile | 1712 | Quant les lances lor falent |
984 | At avalyng of an hulle | 1734 | À l’avaler d’un tertre |
1008. 1012 |
to rescourre þe barons | 1757 | . . les barons rescous . . |
1016 | wel longe hadde þis chas ylest | 1764 | Moult fu grans cele chace |
1058 | and oþre reliques riche ynow wherof y have plentee | 1806 | Et les dignes reliques dont il i ad plenté |
1227 | for to wyte wat þay be and hure covyne yknowe | 2067 | Lor couvine et lor estre enquerre et demander. |
1316 | By an old forsake ȝeate of þe olde antiquyte | 2144 | Par une gaste porte de viel antequité |
1773 | sittynge on a grene erber | 2562 | . . siét sous cel arbre ramé. |
1974 | Florippe his doȝtre þe cortoyse in chambre þar she was In þe paleys yhurde noise and þyder þan she gas | 2712 | Floripas la courtoise a le
nois escoute Puis issi de la cambre, . . . Entresi c’au palais . . |
2007 | þow ert asotid | 2733 | . . vous voi assoté. |
2538 | a gret repref it were | 3136 | . . il nous est reprouvé |
3665 | brydel and paytrel and al þe gere wiþ fyn gold yharneyssed were | 4117 | Li estrier furent d’or, rices fu li poitrés |
3672 | and þe king him gan ascrie | 4126 | . . . si s’est haut escriés. |
3791 | a gret dul þay made þere | 4236 | . . demainent grant dolour |
4541 | with an hard crestid serpentis fel | 4832 | vestu ot la pel d’un dur serpent cresté |
5753 | on þan ston a cracchede and in a spatte in dispit of god, etc. | 5910 | en despit de Ihesu ens es fous ecraca. |
Besides these undoubted examples of translation, we must bear in mind that there occur some variations of readings, where, indeed, the author of Syr Ferumbras seems to have introduced slight incidents and modifications. But examining them more closely, we shall soon become aware that many of them also point to a French original, which we may sometimes identify by comparing these variations with the readings of those French MSS. that are already printed. Thus, the words “þarto ys stede þan tyeþ he,” l. 91, render exactly a line of the Escorial MS.36—“son cheval aresna à l’abricel rose”—which is omitted in l. 93 of F (i. e. the French Fierabras, as edited by MM. Krœber and Servois).37 ‹xix›
The following is another example of A (= the Ashmolean Ferumbras) differing from F, but agreeing with E:
A. | E. | ||
---|---|---|---|
175 | Ne lyre he noȝt þys day til evene | 175 | ke il puisse tant vivre que cis jours soit passés |
2131 | Adoun þay gunne falle, knellyng on þe erthe stille ... & kussedem everechone, etc. | 2833 | Issi agenoillierent par bones volentez ... Ils baissent les reliques ... |
Notwithstanding these resemblances of A to E, in passages where A differs from F, E cannot have been the source of A, as there are many instances where E and F show the same reading, whereas A differs from both versions.
Thus, A, l. 340 et seq., it is Duke Reyner who blesses his son, and not Charles, as E and F (l. 357) have it.
The names of Arrenor, Gwychard, Gayot, and Angwyree, given in l. 814, differ from those which are mentioned in the corresponding passage of E and F (ll. 1548–49).
There is no mention of Kargys being slain by Oliver (A 880) to be found in E or F (l. 1670–76).
In A 1178, Lamasour advises the Soudan not to slay the prisoners; in E and F (l. 1948) the same advice is given by Brulans.
The names of Lambrock and Colbrant (A 1616, 1618) are not found in E and F, 2424.
A, ll. 1347–48, are wanting in E and F (2174). ‹xx›
Instead of a giant (A 1700) we find a giantess mentioned in E and F (l. 2483).
Instead of Roland (A 1793) it is Naymes who speaks first in E and F, 2570.
These few instances, the number of which might easily be increased, will certainly suffice to show the impossibility of regarding E as the original of A.
Only a short passage of the Didot MS. has been hitherto printed;38 therefore the arguments drawn from a comparison of A with that printed passage cannot be considered as altogether irrefutable and final. But as the Didot MS. belongs to the same family of MSS. as E, we may at once presume, that as E cannot be taken for the original of A, the possibility of the Didot MS. being the source of A, is not very strong. Besides it may be stated, that no trace of the two additional lines (ll. 19 and 2039) which the Didot MS. inserts after l. 63 of a (or F) is found in A, although this version gives, in ll. 52 ss., a pretty close translation of the corresponding passage in F (ll. 50 et seq.). This may lead us to conclude that the Didot MS. was not the source of A.
Comparing now A with what is known of the Hanover MS. of Fierabras,40 we find A resembling to H in the following names: Lucafer (only once Lukefer in A 2204), Maragounde (once Marigounde, A 1364), Maubyn A = Maupyn H.—A 1700 and 2831, which differ from F, equally agree with H. In the last case A agrees also with E (although differing from F). Now as we know that H together with D and E are derived from the same group z,41 we may perhaps be justified in regarding a MS. of the latter group as the original of A. But a more detailed comparison of A with H being impossible at present, this argumentation wants confirmation.
The impossibility of regarding the Provençal version as the source ‹xxi› of the Ashmolean Ferumbras, is proved by the fact that the long additional account, the ‘episode’ as Professor Grœber calls it,42 is wanting in A. Another proof is given by A, ll. 5763 et seq., where A agrees with F, but widely differs from P.43
It seems superfluous to point out the inadmissibility of regarding the French prose version as the original of A, the first edition of the prose version being of a much later date than the Ashmole Ferumbras. But also that version from which the prose romance has been copied or compiled, cannot have been the original of A. For although the phrase of A, 3888—“A skuntede as a bore”—seems to contain some resemblance of expression with the reading of the prose Fierabras—“il commença à escumer come s’il fust ung senglier eschaufé,” which Caxton translates—“he began to scumme at the mouthe lyke a bore enchaffed”—the reading of A, ll. 1307 ss., which greatly varies from Caxton’s version (a translation of the French prose Fierabras), renders inadmissible the supposition that the original of the French prose version is the source of A.44
Having thus compared the Ashmolean Ferumbras, as far as can be done at present, with all existing versions of this romance, we arrive at the following conclusions.
The Ashmole Ferumbras is a pretty close translation of some French version, which we are at present unable to identify. Its original was neither of the same family (w) as the Fierabras, edited by MM. Krœber and Servois, nor yet of that of the Escorial version. Nevertheless, the original of Sir Ferumbras cannot have differed much from the common original, from which these two groups of MSS. are derived. To this original, called y by Grœber, the MS., from which A has been copied, appears to have been more closely related than to the Provençal version, from which it certainly is not derived. As the liberties which the author of Sir Ferumbras took in translating his original, consist only in very slight modifications, we may conclude ‹xxii› from his closeness of translation in general, that in those passages of A which exhibit significant deviations from the known French versions, these variations are not due to the composer of the Ashmolean poem, but were already to be found in its original. Therefore the Ashmole Ferumbras may be considered as representing by itself the translation of an independent French MS., which perhaps belonged, or at least was nearly related, to the type y.
I now come to the consideration of the Sowdan of Babylone, which the simple analysis given by Ellis,45 shows to be an essentially different work from the Ashmolean Ferumbras. Indeed, whilst the Syr Ferumbras represents only a portion (viz. the second part) of the original Fierabras [or Balan, as Gaston Paris has styled it],46 the Sowdan approaches the original more nearly in that it contains the long ‘introductory account’.47 For this first part of the Sowdan (as far as l. 970), although it cannot be considered as identical with the first portion of the old Balan romance, contains several facts, which, however abridged and modified, show a great resemblance with those which must have been the subject of the lost portion of the old original. Whereas the Ashmolean Ferumbras is, on the whole, a mere translation of a French original, the Sowdan must be looked upon as a free reproduction of the English redactor, who, though following his original as far as regards the course of events, modelled the matter given there according to his own genius, and thus came to compose an independent work of his own.
This point being fully treated in my Dissertation,48 I need not again enter into discussion of it here. I only mention that the composer of the Sowdan has much shortened his original, omitting all episodes and secondary circumstances not necessarily connected with the principal action, so that this poem does not contain half the number of lines which his original had,49 and that the proportion of the diffuse Ashmolean Ferumbras and the Sowdan is over five to one.50 ‹xxiii›
The subject of the ‘introductory account,’ or the first part of the Sowdan, is nearly the same as that of the Destruction de Rome, differing from this poem only in the omission of a few insignificant incidents or minor episodes, and in greater conciseness, which latter circumstances, however, enters into the general plan of the author.
Indeed, the author of the Sowdan seems to have known the Destruction, as we see from a comparison of the two poems. Thus the following instances show a great resemblance of expression of the two versions:
Sowdan. | Destruction. | ||
---|---|---|---|
37 | ‘With kinges xii and admyralles xiv’ | 420 | ‘Ensemble ou li issirent xv roi corone Et xiv amaceours’ |
1154 | ‘Bien i a xxx roi et xiv admiré’ | ||
689 | ‘xxx roi sont ou li et xiv amaceours’ | ||
163 | ‘Et xiv amaceours’ | ||
77 | ‘The Romaynes robbed us anone’ | 115 –16 |
‘De cels de Romenie que m’ont fait desrobber. Tiel avoir m’ont robbé’ |
75 | ‘to presente you’ | 119 | ‘vous quidai presenter’ |
76 | ‘a drift of wedir us droffe to Rome’ | 120 | ‘Uns vens nous fist à Rome parmi le far sigler’ |
110 | ‘An hundred thousande’ | 217 | ‘Par C fois M payen’ |
128 | ‘To manace with the Cristene lore’ | 228 | ‘pour François menacier’ |
332 | ‘Et menace François pour faire les loye’ | ||
175 –76 |
‘Oure sheldes be not broke nothinge, Hawberkes, spere, ner poleyne, ner pole’ | 546 –47 |
‘Quant encor nen est lance quassée ne brusie, Ne halbers derompus, ne fors targe percie’ |
224 –27 |
‘Lukafere, Kinge of Baldas, The countrey hade serchid and sought, Ten thousande maidyns fayre of face Unto the Sowdan hath he broghte’ | 613 –19 |
‘Lucafer de Baldas discent al mestre tre, Devant l’amirail vint, forment l’a encline: Voyant tot ses barnages l’a l’eschec presente, Moignes, prestres et lais, que sont enchenee, Hermites et enfants, a tous lor poign lié; As femmes et pucels les os furent bende, Totes vives presentent par devant l’admiré.’ |
228 | ss. ‘The Sowdane commaunded hem anone That thai shulde al be slayne . . . He saide “My peple nowe ne shalle With hem noughte defouled be”’ | 614 | ‘Maintenant soient tot occis et descoupé. Ne voil que mi serjant en soient encombré.’ |
278 | ‘He clepede his engynour Sir Mavone’ | 908 | ‘Sortibrans a mande Mabon l’engineor’ |
289 | ‘Mahoundis benysone thou shalt haue’ | 627 | ‘Mahon te benoie’ |
925 | ‘Mahon te doint honor’ ‹xxiv› | ||
286 | ‘And fille the dikes faste anoone’ | 934 | ‘Si emplirons les fosses’ |
293 | ‘Men myght go even to the walle’ | 918 | ‘K’om poet aler al mure’ |
952 | ‘K’om pooit bien au mur et venir et aler’ | ||
307 | ‘The hethen withdrowe hem tho’ | 979 | ‘Payen se sont retrait’ |
317 | ‘His baner knowe I ful welle’ | 997 | ‘Jeo ai bien ses armes conu et avisee’ |
331 | ‘He entred to the maistre toure’ | 1011 | ‘Tantost le mestre porte aurons moult bien ferme’ |
332 | ‘The firste warde thus they wonne’ | 1057 | ‘Mais tot le premier bail ont Sarasin pople’ |
346 –50 |
‘And Estragot with him he mette With bores hede, blake and donne. For as a bore an hede hadde And a grete mace stronge as stele. He smote Savaryz as he were madde’ | 1090 –94 |
‘Estragot le poursuit, uns geans diffaes, Teste avoit com senglers, si fu rois coronés. El main tient une mace de fin ascier trempé, Un coup a Savariz desur le chef done’ |
587 | ‘Therfore Gy of Bourgoyne! Myn owen nevewe so trewe’ | 1179 | ‘Et Guion de Bourgoyne a a lui apelle, Fils est de sa soror et de sa parente: Cosins, vous en irrés . .’ |
647 | ‘He smote of the traytours hede’ | 1236 | ‘Le chief al portier trenche’ |
648 | ‘And saide “Gode gife him care, Shal he never more ete brede, All traitours evel mot thai fare”’ | 1244 | ‘“Diex” fist il “te maldie et que t’ont engendré, Kar traitour au darain averont mal dehé.”’ |
663 | ‘Ferumbras to Seinte Petris wente’ | 1260 | ‘Al moustier de saint Piere est Fierenbras ales’ |
727 | ‘Thre hundred thousande of sowdeours’ | 1403 | ‘iii C mil chevaliers’ |
743 | ‘Sir Gye aspied his comynge, He knewe the baner of Fraunce, He wente anoone ayen the Kinge, And tolde him of that myschaunce, Howe that the cursed sowdone, Hath brent Rome and bore the relequis awaye’ |
1409 | ‘Guis parceut le baniere le roi de saint Dine, Encontre lui chevalche, la novele ont conté Come la fort cité li payen ont gasté; La corone et les clous d’iloec en sont robbé Et les altres reliques . .’ |
771 | ‘Wynde him blewe ful fayre and gode’ | 1425 | ‘Li vens en fiert es voilles que les a bien guies’ |
778 | ‘To londe thai wente iwis’ | 1427 | ‘il sont en terre entré’ |
783 | ‘Tithinggis were tolde to Lavan’ | 1436 | ‘Les noveles en vindrent al soldan diffaié’ |
787 | ‘With three hundred thousand of bacheleris’ | 1443 | ‘iii C mile François’ |
Other instances of resemblance may be found in the following passages:
S 49–50 = D 94–99;51 S 103 = D 202, 209; S 119 = D 385; S 146 = D 445–46; S 150 = D 503–4; S 157 = D 509; S 300 = D 967; ‹xxv› S 303 = D 915; S 396 = D 977; S 312 = D 989; S 340 = D 1063; S 360 = D 1101; S 376 = D 1119, 1121; S 377 = D 1133; S 380 = D 1136; S 699 = D 1379; S 723 = D 1384, &c., &c.
Besides, there are some names which occurring in none of the French versions, but in the Destruction, point to this poem as to the original of the Sowdan. Thus Savaris52 (S 171) seems to be taken from D 540.
Astragot or Estragot, S 346, 2944, 3022, the name of the giant by whom Savaris is slain, and who is said to be the husband of Barrock, occurs in D 1090.
The Ascopartes, a people subjected to the Soudan, are mentioned in D 98, 426, but not in F or P.
King Lowes, in the context where it occurs (S 24) is clearly taken from D 9.
Iffrez, S 165, is perhaps the same as Geffroi in D 1139, 1367, 1122.
[Mounpelers, S 3228, occurs only in D 250, 286.]
Persagyn, S 1259, seems to be identical with Persagon, D 162.
The form Laban is only met with in the Destruction, the French and the Provençal versions, and the Ashmole Ferumbras reading Balan.53
The name of the Soudan’s son, Ferumbras, is explained by the form Fierenbras, which occurs in D 57, 66, 71, 91, 343, 1210, 1237, besides the spelling Fierabras, which is the only one used in the French, the Provençal and Caxton’s versions.
Also the phrase ‘sowdan’ seems to have been derived from the Destruction (l. 1436, ‘soldan’), as it does not occur in any other version.
The great number of these resemblances seem evidently to point out the Destruction as the original of the first portion of the Sowdan; the few points in which the two versions differ not being such as to offer convincing arguments against this supposition. ‹xxvi›
Indeed if, for instance, we find a lot of nations, the names of which are not in D, mentioned by the author of the poem as belonging to the Soudan’s empire, this point can be considered as irrelevant, as from many other instances we know how fond many composers of mediæval romances were of citing geographical names, by the great number of which they believed to show their knowledge in that science.54 Also the three names of Saints (Qwyntyn, Symon, Fremond55), and the names of five Saracen gods and of a Saracen bishop,56 many of which, moreover, seem to be inserted only for the sake of rhyme, cannot be regarded as being of great consequence in establishing the source of the Sowdan. Others also, as Oliborn, Focard, Hubert, Gyndard, Tamper (the last occurring twice as a rhyme-word), being the names of insignificant characters, may be looked upon as mere expletives. Another variation is Isrez (ll. 625, 641) for Tabour (D 1202).
Besides these variations in the names contained in the two poems, we find in the Sowdan some slight modifications as to the matter related; none of which, however, is of so significant a character, as necessarily to point to some other original than the Destruction, which the very striking points of resemblance above cited show almost decisively to have been the original of the Sowdan. The differences in the subject-matter may be explained by the tendency of the poet to follow his original only as far as the principal events are concerned, but to have his own way in the arrangement of the subject-matter, and especially to deal freely with secondary incidents.
Thus he may have thought the combat round Château-Miroir—which, moreover, is related in the Destruction in a rather obscure and confused style—to be a rather episodical incident, which he had better leave out in his poem, as not advancing the principal course of events.
A similar explanation may be given of the fact, that the account of Lukafer’s desiring the hand of Floripas is given on another occasion in the Sowdan than in the Destruction. In the Destruction, l. 241, Lucafer claims that maiden immediately on arriving in the ‹xxvii› Soudan’s camp, as a reward for his having travelled such a long way in Laban’s service. The poet of the Sowdan thinking, perhaps, that this was not a sufficient reason to justify such a claim, mentions this incident at another time, which he may have considered as more properly chosen for demanding a reward. It is on returning from a victorious expedition undertaken by Lukafer that the latter in the Sowdan, ll. 224–242, asks for the hand of Floripas.
As to the following or second part of the Sowdan, on the whole the same subject is treated of as in the Ashmole Ferumbras. But there are many differences between the two poems.
In the Sowdan, l. 1411 et seq., Roland is captured by the Saracens at the same time as Oliver, and both on being conducted before Laban at once avow their names. In the Ashmole MS., ll. 909, &c., Oliver is led away to the Soudan together with Gwylmer, Berard, Geoffrey, and Aubray, whereas Roland is among the French peers whom Charlemagne sends on a mission to Laban to demand the surrender of Oliver.57
The names of the twelve peers do not agree in both poems. In the Sowdan we find the following list (cf. ll. 1653 et seq., and ll. 1730, 880):—Roland, Oliver, Duk Neymes of Bavere, Oger Danoys, Tery Lardeneys, Folk Baliante, Aleroyse of Loreyne, Miron of Braban, Bishop Turpyn, Bernard of Spruwse, Bryer of Mountez,58 Guy of Bourgoyne.59—Richard of Normandye, although a most important personage, is not included amongst the Douzeperes. Nor is Guenelyn mentioned as a peer of France. Four of these names, Folk Baliant, Turpyn, Bernard of Spruwse, Aleroyse of Loreyne, do not occur at all in the Ashmolean Ferumbras.60
The new game which Lucafer wants to teach Neymes, is differently described in the two poems, there being no mention made in the Ashmol. MS. (ll. 2231 et seq.) of the thread, needle, and coal, as spoken of in ll. 1998–2000 of the Sowdan. ‹xxviii›
In the Sowdan, l. 2507, Laban, being engaged with his gods, seizes the image of Mahound and smashes it. This incident is omitted in Syr Ferumbras (ll. 3345).
In the Ashmole MS., ll. 5760 et seq., Ferumbras tries to persuade his father to become a Christian, whilst Floripas urges Charles not to delay in putting him to death. In the Sowdan, l. 3156 et seq., there is no mention of either of them interfering either for or against their father.
Ashm. MS., ll. 130 et seq., differs greatly from the corresponding passage in the Sowdan (ll. 1647 et seq.). In the latter poem the knights are pulled up from their dungeon with a rope, whilst in the former they have their fetters taken off by means of a sledge-hammer, anvil, and tongs, &c.
In the Sowdan, l. 3044, Richard of Normandy is left back as a governor of Mantrible; in the Ashmole version, l. 4881 et seq., Raoul and Howel are ordered to keep that place, whereas Richard accompanies Charlemagne (cf. l. 5499).
In the Ashm. MS., l. 5209, Neymes sees first Charles coming with his host; in the Sowdan, l. 3083, it is Floripas who first discovers the banner of France.
The prayer which Charlemagne, seeing Oliver in distress, addressed to Christ, in the Sowdan, l. 1304 et seq., is not mentioned in the Ashm. version.
The account of the duel between Oliver and Ferumbras differs considerably in the two versions. In the Ashmolean MS., l. 580, the incident of Oliver assisting Ferumbras to arm (cf. Sowdan, 1158) is omitted, and it is not Oliver (as in the Sowdan, l. 1270) who is disarmed, but Ferumbras, whom his adversary offers to accept his own sword back (Ashm. MS., l. 680).
In the Ashmolean version, l. 102, Ferumbras offers to fight at once with twelve of Charles’s knights; in the corresponding passage of the Sowdan, l. 1067, he challenges only six.
In the Sowdan, l. 1512 et seq., Floripas advises her father not to slay the captive peers, but to detain them as hostages that might be exchanged for Ferumbras. In the Ashm. MS., l. 1178, it is not Floripas, but Lamasour, who gives that advice to the amirant. ‹xxix›
As in many of the variations, mentioned just before, there are many omissions in the Ashmole MS., which are related in the Sowdan, it becomes evident that the Ashmolean version cannot have been the original from which the Sowdan was copied, which is also proved by several names occurring in the Sowdan, but which are not to be found in Syr Ferumbras. Thus, for instance, the names of Espiard, Belmore, Fortibrance, Tamper,61 do not occur at all in the Ashmolean version, whereas other names have quite a different form in the latter poem. For Generyse, S 1135, 1239, we find Garin, A 216, 443; Barrock, S 2939, 2943, 3022 = Amyote, A 4663; Alagolofur, S 2135, 2881 = Agolafre, A 3831, 4327; and Laban is always spelt Balan in the Ashmolean poem, &c.
Now as there are some passages where the Sowdan, while it differs from the Ashm. MS., corresponds with the French Fierabras, we might be inclined to think that poem to be the original of the Sowdan. Thus Charlemagne’s prayer and the name of Bishop Turpin, which are omitted in the Ashm. MS., occur in the French Fierabras. But there are several differences between the Sowdan and the French poem.
In the Fierabras, l. 1933, the French prisoners, on being brought before the Soudan, do not avow their true names as they do in the Sowdan, l. 1498.
In the French poem, l. 704, Oliver tells his adversary his name before the fight begins; in the Sowdan, l. 1249, he does not confess his true name until they had fought for a considerable time.
In the Fierabras, l. 1043, Oliver drinks of the bottles of balm, which is not mentioned in the Sowdan, l. 1190.
Again, Fierabras, ll. 1329 ss., where Ferumbras having disarmed Oliver, tells him to take his sword back again, does not agree with ll. 1279–82 of the Sowdan.
Instead of Floripas (S 1515), Brulans advises the Soudan not to slay the prisoners in F 1949.
The French knight slain at the sally of the captives is called Bryer in S 2604, but Basin in F 3313. ‹xxx›
Concerning the sacred relics there is no mention made of the cross (S 3236) in the French poem, and the signe, i. e. ‘the shroud or winding-sheet of the Lord’62 (F 6094), is omitted in the Sowdan.
Besides these variations of the two versions there is an incident of Marsedag being killed by Guy, and buried by the Saracens (S 2247–2274), which being omitted in the Fierabras proves that the author of the Sowdan cannot have followed the French poem, or at least not that version which is edited by MM. Krœber and Servois.
Similarly there is no mention made in the French Fierabras of Bryer being charged to take care of the relics and of Charles’s treasure (S 3204).
The game of blowing burning coals is related in Sowdan, l. 1996 ss., with several details which are wanting in the French poem, l. 2907.
The names also do not always agree in both versions. Thus we find Generyse, S 1139, for Garin, F 438; Mapyn, S 2325, for Maubrun, F 3046; Alagolofur, S 2135, for Agolafre, F 4290 or Golafre, F 4267, 4383; Bryer, S 2604, for Basin, F 3313; Maragounde, S 1563, for Marabunde, F 2196; Boloyne, S 3238, for St. Denis, F 6199; Barokke, S 2939, and Espiard, S 2145, are not mentioned at all in the French Fierabras, nor does Belmore, S 3122, occur in the Fierabras, either in the corresponding passage, F 5867, or elsewhere.
On the fact that the names of the twelve peers (see above, p. xxvii) differ in the Sowdan from those mentioned in the Fierabras, too much stress need not, I think, be laid, as it might be explained by the simple inadvertence of the composer. The poet in freely reproducing his source, which he generally followed pretty closely as far as relates the course of events, well remembered the names of the principal French knights; but having forgotten those of less important characters, some of whom do not appear again in the poem, and being obliged to fill up their number of twelve, might have placed any names which he remembered having met with somewhere ‹xxxi› as included in the list of the douzeperes. By an oversight he omitted to mention Richard, whom however we see appear afterwards.63
Similarly the names of Laban and Ferumbras for Balan and Fierabras afford no convincing proof of the impossibility of the French Fierabras being the original of the second part of the Sowdan, as the poet, having found those spellings in the Destruction, the source of the first portion of his romance, might simply have retained them for the whole poem.
But reviewing all the facts of the case, and taking into account those passages which relate incidents omitted in the Fierabras, and which the author of the Sowdan therefore cannot have taken from that poem—and further taking into account the several differences between the two versions, which, it may be admitted, generally speaking, are only slight ones—the French Fierabras, i. e. the version edited by MM. Krœber and Servois, which represents the group w (see before, p. xix, footnote), cannot have been the original of the second part of the Sowdan.
Proceeding now to a comparison of the Sowdan with the Escorial MS.,64 we have not found any passage where S differing from F agrees with E, as E and F generally have in those places the same reading. Therefore the Escorial MS. cannot be regarded as the original of the Sowdan.
Unfortunately the fragment printed from the Hanover MS. is too short to allow of an exact comparison with that version. We only know65 that some names, the spelling of which in the Sowdan differs from that in the other versions, have the same form in the Hanover MS. as in the Sowdan. Thus we find the following names agreeing in both versions: Lucafer, Maragonde, Maupyn. Only instead of Laban which is used in the Sowdan, we read Balan. In the fragment printed by Grœber,66 we find the name of the Soudan’s son ‹xxxii› with the same spelling as in the Destruction, Fierenbras, which is nearer to Ferumbras than Fierabras.67
This resemblance of the names contained in the two versions might lead us to believe the Hanover MS. of Fierabras to be the original of the second part of the Sowdan, just as the Destruction, found in the same MS., is the original of the first part. But as, according to Gaston Paris, the Hanoverian version “is the same as the printed text, differing only in slight variations of readings,”68 we may suppose it likely that in all passages where the Sowdan differs from the printed Fierabras, it also differs from the Hanover MS. Nevertheless, as the differences between the Sowdan and the printed Fierabras are, on the whole, not very significant; for the several instances of omission in the Sowdan, being easily accounted for by the general plan of the poet, cannot be regarded as real variations; and as some names, the spelling of which differs in S and F, are found to be identical in S and H, we might, perhaps, be entitled to think the second part of the Sowdan to be founded on a MS. similar to the Hanover one.
It still remains for us to compare the Sowdan with the Provençal version.
In most cases where S differs from F, it also differs from P, therefore S cannot have taken those variations of readings from the Provençal poem.
The account of the knights sent on a mission to Laban, in S 1663–1738, considerably differs from the corresponding passage in P 2211 ss.
In P the scene of the whole poem is placed in Spain, there is no mention of the combat before Rome,69 as in the first part of the Sowdan.
The game of blowing a coal, S 1996 ss., is not mentioned in the Provençal version.
From these variations, taken at random out of a greater number, ‹xxxiii› it becomes evident that the Provençal poem has not been the original of the Sowdan.
If now we compare the Sowdan with Caxton’s version, which we know to be simply a translation of the French prose romance of Fierabras;70 the few following instances of differences between C and S will show at once, that also that version from which the prose romance was copied or compiled71 cannot have been the original of the Sowdan.
There are several variations in the names contained in the two versions. Thus we find Ballant in C for Laban in S; Fyerabras in C for Ferumbras in S; Garin, C 55/3 = Generyse, S 1135; Amyotte, C 176/26 = Barrokk, S 1135, &c. The game of blowing a coal is told with more details in S 1998, and somewhat differently from C 118/24; the incident of Laban’s seizing the image of Mahound and smashing it, which is related in S 2507, is omitted in C, &c.
Looking back now to our investigation concerning the original of the Sowdan, we sum up what results from it, in the following resumé:
Most probably the Destruction de Rome is the original of the first part of the Sowdan. As to the second part, we are unable to identify it with any of the extant versions. The French Fierabras, as edited by MM. Krœber and Servois, is not the original, but the differences between the two poems are not significant; apparently a version similar to the Hanover MS. may be thought to be the original.
The Sowdan is no translation, but a free reproduction of its originals; the author of the Sowdan following his sources only as far as concerns the course of the principal events, but going his own independent way in arranging the subject-matter as well as in many minor points.
The Sowdan differs from the poem of Syr Ferumbras in two principal points:
(1) In being an original work, not in the conception, but in the treatment of the subject-matter, whereas the Ashmole Ferumbras is little more than a mere translation. ‹xxxiv›
(2) In representing, in its first portion, the first part of the old Balan romance, whereas Syr Ferumbras contains only the second. But as that second part of the old Balan romance appears to be considerably modified and greatly amplified in the Ashmole Ferumbras, so the first part of the Sowdan contains a likewise modified, but much shortened, narration of the first part of the old Balan poem, so that the Sowdan has arrived to become quite a different work from the original Balan or Fierabras romance, and that a reconstruction of the contents of that old poem would be impossible from the Sowdan.
AS regards the language of the Sowdan, the first point is the dialect. Looking at the plurals of the present indicative in -en or -n, we at once detect the Midland peculiarities of the poem. Thus we find, l. 1331, gone rhyming with one, l. 1010, goon : camalyon, l. 506, gone : than, l. 1762, lyven : gyfen, l. 1816, byleven : even.
The verbal forms of the singular present indicative and of the second person sing. preterite of weak verbs lead us to assign this poem to an East-Midland writer. The 2nd and 3rd person singular present indicative end in -est, -eth; and the 2nd person sing. preterite of weak verbs exhibits the inflection -est: l. 1202, goist : moost; 1314, 1715, knowest; 1344, trowest; 1154, blowest; 1153, saiest; 2292, forgetist; 560, doist; 1193, doistowe;—1093, goth : wroth, 1609 : loth, 1620 : doth; 1728, sleith : deth; 561, sholdest; 1244, shuldist; 603, madist; 563, hadist; 2219, askapedist, &c.—Twice we find the 2nd person preterite without -est (made, wroght); but see the note to l. 2.
If, now, we examine the phonological and inflectional peculiarities of the Sowdan, we find them thoroughly agreeing with those of other East-Midland works,72 which still further confirms the supposition of the East-Midland origin of the poem. ‹xxxv›
I or y, the descendants of original u (which in Old English [Anglo-Saxon] had already become y or i in consequence of i- mutation or umlaut)—are found rhyming with original i:—ll. 449, 881, kyn : him, 2060 : wynne; 1657, fille : stille; 1973, fire : desire, &c. It must, however, be noted that the rhyme king : inne (l. 372) or king : thing (ll. 173, 236) cannot be regarded as an East-Midland peculiarity, because king, drihten, chikken, the i of which is a modification of original u, are to be met with in all Middle-English dialects, as has been shown by Professor Zupitza in the Anzeiger für deutsches Altertum, vol. vi. p. 6.
Old English short a, which is liable to change into o, appears in this poem—
(1) always as o, before n- combinations (nd, nt, ng):—531, stronge : istonge; 3166, bronte : fonte; 214, amonge : longe, &c.
(2) as a, before the single consonants m and n:—1120, name : shame, 935 : same, 1739 : grame; 785, 1773, man : Lavan; 3125, came : Lavan (cf. 2579, Lavan : tane); 2160, came : dame, &c.—The fact that com (ll. 547, 1395, 3095, &c.) is used as well as cam as sing. preterite indic. need occasion no difficulty if we remember that the original short a (or o) of cam (or com) had already been lengthened into ô in the O.E. period.73 Came and come as pret. sing. are employed indifferently in Chaucer as well as in the Celestin (ed. Horstmann, Anglia, i. 56), which is known to have been composed in the East-Midland dialect.
O long, from O.E. â, in our poem has that broad sound which is peculiar to the East-Midland dialect. We find it rhyming with—
(1) original ô:—1025, wrothe : sothe; 801, goo : doo; 60, inowe : blowe; 325, so : ido, &c.
(2) unchangeable a:—257, Aufricanes : stoones; 506, gon : than; 2049, agoon : Lavan, &c.
As many East-Midland works74 the Sowdan has three forms for O.E. þâr:—thare, thore, there, all of which are established by the rhyme:—1805, thore : Egremoure (cf. 2895, Egremoure : tresoure, 1003, Agremore : more); 126, thore : lore; 430, thare : sware; ‹xxxvi› 2245, there : chere, 2404 : bere; 2604, there : were (wron), 208 : were (werian), &c.
We likewise find sore and sare75 (O.E. sâre):—1196, sore : more; 166, sare : care; 1377, sore : thore.
The O.E. diphthongs ea and eo and the O.E. ŷ (mutated from êa or êo) appear as e in this poem:—1595, me : see, 632 : fee, 1339 : free, 405 : be; 1535, depe : slepe; 1011, 1523, dere : here; 963, yere : vere, 1257 : Olyvere; 996, nere : were; 596, 1528, nede : spede; 1702, eke : speke; 1726, leke : speke; 184, 215, 1208, shelde : felde; 2530, hevene : elevene, &c.
A brief summary of the grammatical inflexions employed in the poem will also give evidence of a great similarity with the forms used by other East-Midland writers, and will serve to show that the language of the Sowdan agrees closely with that of Chaucer.
In the declension of substantives the only remnant of case-formation by means of inflexions is the ending used to form the Genitive Singular and the Plural.
The genitive singular of nouns ends in es (sometimes written -is or ys) for all genders:—356, develes; 1209, stedes; 849, worldis; 1804, worldes; 3035, dammes; 1641, nedes; 1770, shippes; 1072, faderis.
Substantives ending in -s in the nominative case, remain unchanged in the genitive case:—1214, 1287, Ferumbras; 2006, Naymes; 3207, Charles; 1639, 1350, Floripas.—Florip, l. 614, is the genitive case of Floripe or Florip, l. 2027, 1571.
The nominative plural of all genders is formed by -es (-is, -ys) or -s:—919, knightes, 1947, 2276, knightis; 1384, horses, 1401, horsys; 429, 2054, gatis; 192, wordes; 837, swerdes; 174, hedes; 2289, ladies; 3271, soules; 26, bokes; 606, peres; 297, tours, &c. Examples of a plural case without s are seen in thinge, l. 2, 1709:—O.E. þing; honde, 987, O.E. handa, as well as hondes, 1412, 2568; frende, 3212, O.E. frŷnd, as well as frendes, 1011, O.E. frêondas. Other plurals which are equally easily explained by their O.E. forms are:—eyen, 825, O.E. êagan; shoone, 1381, O.E. scêon; fete, 1403, O.E. fêt, fote, 1427, O.E. fôtum, 2673, O.E. fôta. ‹xxxvii›
To mark the difference between the definite and indefinite forms of adjectives is a difficult task; as the final -e had in most cases already become silent in the poet’s dialect, it seems probable that he no longer observed the distinction.
The pronouns are the same as in Chaucer and in other East-Midland poems:—I, me, thou, the; he, hym; sche, her and hir; it and hit (cf. note to l. 41); we, us; ye, you. The plural of the personal pronoun of the 3rd person is thai and he (cf. note to l. 2698) for the nominative case; hem, and in some doubtful passages (see note to l. 88) thaym for the accusative case.
As in Chaucer, the pronoun of the 2nd person is often joined to the verb:—hastow 1680, maistow 1826, shaltow 1669, woltow 1727, wiltow 1151, artow 1967, kanstow 2335, &c.
Possessive pronouns:—myn and thyn are used before vowels and before h; my, thy before consonants. Only once, l. 90, my is placed before a vowel. His, hire and here; our, your; here and (twice, 623, 1244) thair.
The demonstrative pronouns are this, these or thes; that.
The definite article the or þe, is used for all cases singular and plural. But we find besides, the following examples of inflexion:—tho, 2063, O.E. þâ, and the accusative sing. þon, 108. In l. 2052, tho means ‘them, those’ = Lat. eos. Tha, l. 2639, seems to be a mistake of the scribe, it is perhaps miswritten for þat (day), cf. l. 619.
Men, 115, 1351, and me, 287, are used as indefinite pronouns. Everyche, every, everychone occur frequently. Note also ichoon 2774, ilka 2016; thilke 2644, eche 1865.
That or þat, who, whome are used as relative pronouns. The interrogative pronouns are who and what.
Verbs. The plural imperative ends in -eth or -th, which, however, we find frequently omitted, as in l. 194, prove you, 2078 proveth; 2131 sende, 167 sendith; telle 1977, tellyth 1625, &c.
The -n of the infinitive mood is often dropped, as in Chaucer:—274, 1588, sene : bene; 1124, see : tre; 658 : cite; 600, be : cite; 1225 : contre; 1411, flee : cite; 3065, fleen : men; 1282, sloo : mo; 792, sloone : one, &c.
The final -(e)n of past participles of strong verbs is in most cases ‹xxxviii› dropped, as in Chaucer:—3176 forlorne: borne, 32 born, 3011 wonne, 21 wonnen, 2756 comen : nomen, 155 come, 2476 holpe, 1362 bygote, 1026 blowe, &c.
Weak verbs form their past participles in -ed, -d, -et, -t, much as in Chaucer:—lerned 3042, eyde 1648, toolde 670, bogt 111, delte 526, displaied 133.
The prefix i- or y- occurs sometimes, icome 784, come 155, istonge 533, itake 49, taken 1430, &c.
The present participles end in -inge and ande, as is often the case in East-Midland works:—2831 prikande : comande, 435 cryande, 924 makande, 3225 mornynge : kynge, 2399 slepynge : honde, where evidently slepande is the true reading.
As in Chaucer the 2nd person preterite of strong verbs is sometimes formed by -est or -ist, letist 2167; but we find also regular forms, as in slough 1259, where, however, the O.E. e (slôge) is already dropped.
The -en or -n of the preterite plural and of past participles is commonly dropped, ronnen 3007, ronne 2959, took 477, tokene 2621, slough 78, sloughen 401, ido 327: so, &c.
The -d in the past participles and in the preterite of weak verbs is sometimes omitted, as often happens in East-Midland works. Thus we find comforte 2242 and comforted 312, commaunde 57 and commaunded 228, graunte 607, liste 1132, list 1966, discumfite 1464, &c. On the same analogy we find light 1125, 1189, and lighted 3109, worth 1203, and worthed 1163.
As regards the final -e’s, it may be remarked that the scribe has added many final -e’s, where the rules would not lead us to suspect them, and has often given a final -e to words which in other passages of the poem, although similarly used, have no e:—note 245, 274, not 255, 313; howe 19, how 275; undere 61, under 713; bute 247, but 8; cooste 202, coost 3062; crafte 424, craft 2335; ashamede 1295, ashamed 558, &c.
This is due either to carelessness on the part of the scribe, or perhaps to the fact that in the speech of the copyist the final e’s had already become altogether silent, so that finding many words ending in -e and not knowing its meaning, he considered it as a mere ‹xxxix› “ornament in writing” (Ellis, Pronunciation, i. 338), and sometimes added, sometimes omitted it.
With respect to the composer of the Sowdan himself, there may be some doubt left whether in his speech the final e had become altogether silent, or was still pronounced occasionally. From the following instances it may be concluded with certainty that the poet very frequently did not sound the final e:—757 boghtẹ : noght, 3154 hat : fat, 961 wrongẹ : distruccion, 556 onlacẹ : was; cf. also 1383, 1611, 2163; 2795 spékẹ we of Ríchard, 2999 fought, 2093, 859 bringẹ, 9, 2547 keptẹ, 834 wentẹ, 142 comẹ, 713 wodẹ.
In other cases there is no certainty whether the final e is quite silent or must be slightly pronounced or slurred over, so as to form trisyllabic measures. It must be noted, however, that in supposing trisyllable measures in all these doubtful cases, the number of this kind of measure will increase to a great amount in the Sowdan. Therefore I rather incline to think the final e silent also in the following instances:—2090 défendẹ this place, 1201 brékẹ both báke, 861 cómẹ from ál, 2119 askẹ consaile, 1597 wólẹ these traítours, 1783 whéns comẹ yé, 2317 pássẹ that brígge, 1100 rónnẹ bytwéne, 2997 fóught so lónge, 175 brokẹ nothinge, 1658 béddẹ with ríght, 713 grénẹ wodẹ síde, 571 hómẹ to Rómẹ that nýght, 1610 the fáls jailoúr feddẹ yoúr prisonére, 2152 fáls traitóurs of Fránce, 921 chárged the yónge with ál, 380 aboútẹ midnýghte, 726 sóne to hím, 160 únneth not óne [Chaucer still pronounces unnethë].
Nevertheless there seems to be some instances where the final e is to be sounded, as in ll. 298, 2790, 1332, 1619, 2740, 592, 2166, 2463, 1405, 2386, 895, 332, 91.
Final en also seems sometimes not to constitute a separate syllable:—1365 waít uppon mé, 459 brék our wállis, 45 slép with ópyne ýȝe, 485 cóm by the cóst, 2313 díd it aboút, &c.
In all these cases n had very probably already fallen off in the speech of the poet, as the following examples lead us to suppose:—178 wynne : him, 1582 dye : biwry, 2309 shewe : trewe, 2107 slépe to lónge, 861 cóme from ál, &c.
As regards the final es of nouns, the poet seems to have observed the same rules as those followed by Chaucer; viz. es is sounded when ‹xl› joined to monosyllabic stems; it does not increase the number of syllables (and therefore is often spelt-s instead of-es), when the stem has two or more syllables:—197, 277 goddës, 665 nailës, 445 tentës, 2068 tentïs, 174, 1799 hedës, 2032, 2868 swerdës, 2327 wallës, 1209 stedës, 1770 shippës, 2702 somers, 2687, 2591 felowes, 2660 felows, 2412 maydyns, 647, 1597 traytours, 2036 orders, 45 lovers, 2612, 3098 develes, 1072 faderis, 203, 862 sowdons, 881 sarsyns.
The final es of adverbs seems no longer to constitute a separate syllable:—2213 hónged’ els bý, 2786 éls had’ hé, 2109 éllis I may sínge, 1525 élles wol’ hé, 2061 théns, 1783 whens.
THE poem is composed in four-line stanzas. The arrangement of the rhyme is such that the 1st and 3rd lines rhyme together, and the 2nd and 4th together, which gives the following rhyme-formula: a b a b. The rhyme-endings employed in one stanza do not occur again in the next following.
But it must be noticed that there seem to occur some instances of eight-line stanzas, one of which, beginning at l. 1587, is built on the model employed by Chaucer. Others are arranged differently. Those beginning at ll. 1059 and 1219 show the rhyme-formula a b a b a c a c, in that of l. 1411 the 2nd and 4th lines are rhymed together, and the 5th and 7th, whilst the 1st, 3rd, 6th, 8th, all end with the same rhyme. The formula for the stanzas beginning at ll. 807, 879, 1611 is a b a b c b c b. In the stanza of l. 939 all the pair lines are rhymed together, and the odd ones also, which is the only instance in the poem of eight consecutive lines having only two rhyme-endings, as generally eight lines show four different rhyme-endings, and three only in the passages cited above. But the whole stanza of l. 939 seems not to be due to the author; he has very probably borrowed it from some other poem.76
Turning now our attention to the fact that the lines occurring between the Initials or Capital Letters, which are met with in some passages in the MS., are often divisible by eight, we might feel ‹xli› inclined to regard this as an additional reason for considering the stanza employed in the Sowdan as an eight-line one. Indeed, the portion from the Initial of l. 1679 to the next one of l. 1689 might be taken for one single stanza. The 24 lines from l. 575 (beginning with an Initial) to the next Initial in l. 598 might equally be considered as three stanzas, whilst there are 5 times 8 lines = 5 eight-line stanzas from the Initial of l. 2755 to the next Initial in l. 2795.
In all these instances the supposition of eight-line stanzas would suit the context, as is the case also with other passages. Thus in the following cases it might seem as though eight lines taken together were more closely connected and made better sense than four lines, e. g. ll. 583–598, 1703–1710, 1679–1686, 939–962, 1043–1050, 244 ss., 455 ss., 631 ss., 1059 ss.
But, on the other hand, it must be borne in mind that there are also a great many cases where, as regards the sense, four lines can be considered as an independent whole, when, e. g., the speech spoken by a person is contained in four lines, and the words of another person replying to the first follow in the next four lines. Very often also these next four lines contain only a part of the second person’s reply, so that the remainder of his reply falls into the following stanza. This ‘enjambement’ or continuation of the sense, and sometimes of the syntactical construction from one stanza to another, need not, of course, prevent us from admitting the supposition of eight-line stanzas; as, upon the whole, it is met with in all poems composed in stanzas, and as it is frequently used in Le Morte Arthur (Harleian MS. 2252, ed. Furnivall), which is written in eight-line stanzas; but as there is no instance known of an eight-line stanza containing four different rhyme-endings, which at this supposition it would be the case with the Sowdan, the eight-line stanzas containing either three rhyme-endings, as in Chaucer, or two, as in Le Morte Arthur, and as in some passages of the Sowdan (ll. 1691, 1695, 1699, 1711, 1715), we find Initials placed after four lines, I believe a stanza of four alternately rhyming lines to be the one intended by the composer—a metre which, according to Guest, History of Eng. Rhythms, ii. 317—‘must have been well known and familiar during the fifteenth century.’ The few eight-line stanzas quoted above, may ‹xlii› then be owing either to the inadvertence of the poet, who somewhat carelessly employed one of the two rhyme-endings of one stanza a third and fourth time in the following one, or, perhaps also, he intentionally retained that rhyme-ending, and he inserted eight-line stanzas amongst those of four verses as a mere matter of variation. It is perhaps not impossible that the retention of this rhyme-ending was not greatly felt.
As regards the rhymes themselves, they are both monosyllabic or masculine rhymes, and dissyllabic or feminine ones. Frequently they are used alternating with each other, as in the stanzas beginning with l. 2755.
Sometimes we find four feminine rhymes occurring in an unbroken succession, as in ll. 1263–66. But it must be noticed that the number of masculine rhymes is predominant. Thus the stanzas beginning with ll. 3047, 3063, 3123, 1123, 791, 1035, 1271, 1275, 2019, 1311, 1351, 1463, &c., contain only masculine rhyme-endings.
The rhymes are not always full and true; there occur many imperfect ones.
(1) A word in the singular number is often rhymed with a word in the plural number, which therefore has an additional s (or es):—797, thinge : tidyngys; 2647, fyght : knyghtes; 2087, light : knightes; 1455, cosynes : kinge; 2272, laye : dayes; 2395, 885, Ogere : peres; 2456, alle : walles; 2682, nede : stedes; 944, mone : stoones; cf. also 2376, wile : beguiled. In l. 68, poundis : dromonde; the rhyme becomes perfect in reading pounde, as in l. 2336, instead of poundis.
(2) Single n is found rhyming with n- combinations.
α. n : nd—cf. 814, ychoon : Mahounde; 912, pavilone : Mahounde; 1201, crowne : Mahounde. The rhyme, 162, Rome : houne, may be explained in the same manner, for houne stands for hounde, as it is spelt in ll. 237, 2377, 935, 1756.77
β. n : ng—cf. 2349, Mapyne : endinge; 86, Apolyne : tithinge; 370, inne : kinge; 1455, cosynes : kinge; 3249, Genelyne : kinge; 3171, serpentyne : endinge; 959, distruccion : wronge. ‹xliii›
In 614, love : vowe, the second rhyme vowe does not contain the consonant v.
(3) Rhymes imperfect as concerns the consonants.
m : n—cf. 76, Rome : one; 1672, 364 : done; 2443, 366, come : done; 747, some : soudone; 1323, came : than; 1488, came : ranne; 2128, tyme : pyne; 177, him : wynne; 2375, him : tene; 447, 859, him : kyn; 2004, hyme : skyne; 2353, him : inne.
f : v—cf. 341, twelve : selve; 415, wife : alive; 1762, gyfene : lyvene; 1912, gife : lyve. But in all these cases the rhymes are really perfect, they seem only imperfect in consequence of the copyist writing indiscriminately f and v. Thus the rhyme of l. 341 reappears in l. 1867, self : twelf. In l. 2336 we find gefe, which is written geve in l. 198; lefe, l. 764; safe, l. 864, are spelt with v in ll. 1340, 1529, 2808.
l : n—cf. l. 363, consaile : slayne. Quite similar is l. 1251, felde : sende.
p : k—l. 820, stoupe : stroke. A similar rhyme occurs in Guy, l. 10903, scapid : nakid.
d : t—l. 2868, gyrde : sterte; 1151, plete : dede.
d : p—l. 283, tyde : depe. But this rhyme is very probably owing to the scribe. For depe we ought to read wide.
A single consonant rhymes with a double consonant. The only certain instance occurs in l. 311, tyde : chidde. For in ll. 312, 317, dele : welle, we might read wele, as this word is frequently spelt in the poem; cf. ll. 385, 2618, 1173, 1651, &c. For dedde in l. 2980 (rede : dedde) we may substitute dede, which occurs in l. 2510. The rhyme glad : hadde, 2687, becomes perfect if we read gladde, which is the usual spelling of the word in the poem; cf. ll. 439, 570, 918, &c. Besides, I believe hadde to be monosyllabic. Ferre : nere l. 1575; in l. 117 we find fere.
The rhyme, l. 2654, sloughe : drowe can easily be restored in reading slowe, which occurs frequently, as in ll. 2401, 2683, 304, 2208, &c. The rhyme ane : shafe, 555, seems to be due to some clerical error.
(4) Rhymes imperfect as concerns the vowels.
a : e—2803, gate : lete; perhaps we are justified in reading late, ‹xliv› cf. Havelock, 328; l. 2752, made : dede. The rhymes thare : were, 1383; bare : there, 671; Agremare : there, 33, are really perfect ones, as we know the poet to have used thare, there, and thore indiscriminately; cf. ll. 208, 2604, 430, 1805, 1003; l. 1436, ladde : nede; 2365, ladde : bedde, the author probably pronounced ledde. For lefte, l. 2335 : craft, we may read lafte, as is shown by l. 424, lafte : crafte. In ll. 1781, 544, tene : than, the rhyme will be improved by reading then.
a : o (cf. p. xxxv)—504, thane : gone; 1143, 1079, Rolande : honde; 133, sowdone : Lavan (where we might read sowdan, as in l. 1491); 627, sowdane : towne; 2527, 1684, Roulande : londe.
i(y) : e. This rhyme also occurs in Chaucer; cf. Ellis, Pron. i. 272; see also Guy, p. xiv.—l. 21419, him : hem; 1299, dynte : lente; 523, strike : breke; 1643, mylde : shelde; 1263, togedere : thidere; 1277, wepenless : iwis; 344, shitte : mette; 2538, hende : wynde (read wende), &c.; l. 82, vilane : remedye (read vilanye, as in ll. 179, 2577); but 1015, vilane : me, cf. Guy, xi, ν—813, sle : curtesye; 895, we : lye; cf. Ellis, Pron., i. 271.
The monophthong y is rhymed with a diphthong, the second part of which is y:—l. 441, Sarsynes : Romaynes; 2761, Apolyne : agayne; 2105 : slayne; 2175 : eyne; 2280, dye : waye (cf. 1582); 589, fyne : Bourgoyne.
o: ou (ow).—l. 1023, wrothe : southe (which is written sothe in ll. 2014, 2024, 2246, 2719); 779, fonde : grounde; 260, clarione : soune; 879, lione : crowne; 2780, malison : towne, &c. Cf. also 1264, endured : covered.
o: e.—463, oost : best. The rhyme is restored in reading rest instead of oost.
o: i.—l. 966, sonne : begynne.
ue: ewe.—l. 2312, vertue : fewe. But this rhyme cannot be objected to, as “final French u (as in due) was diphthongized into eu in Chaucerian English.”78
Other irregularities are:—l. 112, douȝte : rowte; 1987, use : house; 1131, thou : lough; 1200, moost : goist; 1730, dethe : sleith; ‹xlv› 2136, pas : grace; 1611, was : mace (in which cases e is silent); 931, 1144, peris : fiers.
A line or verse generally contains four accented syllables, separated from each other by one or by two unaccented syllables, so that there are some instances of trisyllabic feet, as in ll. 817, 834, 2035, 2301, 2791, 3020, 3073, 2313, &c. In ll. 692, 695, two accented syllables are put close together without being separated by an unaccented one, which is altogether wanting. In some passages we find lines of three accented syllables alternating with those of four accents, as in ll. 575–582, 763–770, 839–846, 871–878, 2287–2290, &c. But in most cases lines with four accents follow each other in an unbroken succession, as in ll. 1–372, 995–1010, 1026–1029, 1067–1107, 1147–1154, 1731–1734, &c.
A few instances of verses with more than four accented syllables are also to be met with in the Sowdan. They are either due to the author and therefore intended, as in l. 37, where the poet almost literally imitates his original,79 or they may be considered as due to some clerical error, in which case the metre generally can be restored by a slight emendation.
A verse has generally an iambic effect, that is to say, the first foot begins with an unaccented syllable, which is followed by an accented one. Frequently, however, the first accented syllable is preceded by two unaccented ones, as in ll. 41, 75, 127, 151, 367, 849, 1060, 1815, 1819, 2289, 2758, &c. There are some instances of the first foot consisting of a single (accented) syllable only, the unaccented one being altogether wanting, as in ll. 2120, 2288, 2374, 2394, &c.
GEORGE Ellis attributes the present poem to the end of the fourteenth or beginning of the fifteenth century. “I think,” he says in his Specimens of Early English Metrical Romances, ed. Halliwell, p. 380, “it would not be difficult to prove from internal evidence, that the present translation80 cannot be earlier than the end of the fourteenth or beginning of the fifteenth century.” ‹xlvi›
Having seen from the summary of grammatical peculiarities that there is a great similarity between the language of Chaucer and that of the composer of this romance, we might be inclined to consider the latter as a contemporary of Chaucer. From some passages of the Sowdan, which seem to contain allusions to Chaucerian poetry, we may conclude that the poet must have known the Canterbury Tales. Thus ll. 42–46:—
“Whan kynde corage begynneth to pryke,
Whan ffrith and felde wexen gaye,
And every wight desirith his like,
Whan lovers slepen with opyn yȝe,
As Nightingales on grene tre” . . .
appear to be imitated from the Prologue of the Canterbury Tales, ll. 10–12:—
“And smale fowles maken melodie,
That slepen al the night with open eye,
So priketh hem nature in her corages.”
Further on we remark in ll. 939–40:—
“O thow, rede Marȝ Armypotente,
That in the trende baye hase made þy trone.”
some traces of resemblance with the Knight’s Tale, ll. 1123–26:—
“And downward on a hill under a bent,
There stood the tempul of Marȝ armypotent,
Wrought al of burned steel, of which thentre
Was long and streyt, and gastly for to see,”
which may still be compared with the first lines of the Prologue of Queen Anelida and False Arcite:—
“Thou ferse God of armes, Mars the rede,
That in thy frosty contre called Trace,
Within thy grisly temples ful of drede,
Honoured art as patroun of that place.”81
Now the Prologue of the Canterbury Tales and the Knight’s Tale, being written in couplets, or lines arranged in pairs, were certainly composed after 1385,82 or rather after 1389.83 From the treatment of ‹xlvii› the final e’s, which, contrary to Chaucer’s usage, seem to have been silent in a great number of cases in the poet’s speech, we may further conclude that the Sowdan must be somewhat later than the Canterbury Tales. Therefore the poet of the Sowdan cannot have been merely a later contemporary of Chaucer; I rather think it to be more probable that he must have lived some time after him. This would bring us to the beginning of the fifteenth century as the date of the romance.
As to the name and profession of the poet nothing is known, and we have no clue whatever from the poem.
The present edition of the Sowdan is printed from the unique MS. of the late Sir Thomas Phillips, at Middle Hill, Worcestershire, which is now in the possession of the Rev. John E. A. Fenwick, Thurlestane House, Cheltenham. Sir Thomas Phillips purchased the MS. at Mr. Heber’s sale.84 The oldest possessor’s name which we find noted, is on the reverse of the last leaf of the Manuscript, where is written, “This is John Eteyes (or Ebeye’s) boke, witnes by John Staff”—in a hand circa temp. Eliz. or Jac. I. By some notes made by former possessors on the first fly-leaf of the MS., and by the autograph names which we find there, we learn that Geo. Steevens bought the MS. “at Dr. Farmer’s Sale, Friday June 15, 1798, for 1: 10. 0.” On May 20th, 1800, it was “bought at the Sale of Geo. Stevens, for 3. 4. 6.” by “O. Grahm Gilchrist.”
A transcript of the MS. made by Geo. Stevens had been presented by him to Mr. Douce. This copy was re-transcribed by Geo. Ellis, who, in 1811, published some extracts with an analysis of the romance in the Specimens of Early English Metrical Romances.85 The same copy has been followed by Halliwell, who in his Dictionary of Arch. and Prov. W., has several quotations86 from the present romance, which he styles as “MS. Douce, 175.” ‹xlviii›
The poem of the Sowdan was first printed by the Roxburghe Club in 1854.87 The text of the present edition differs from that of the editio princeps in so far as punctuation is introduced, which is altogether disregarded by the MS. and the Roxburghe Club edition. In some passages words which have been written as one in the MS. are separated in the text; thus a laye, l. 2694; a ras, l. 645, are printed instead of alaye, aras. Sometimes also words written separately in the MS. are united by a hyphen, as be-falle, 14; i-wiss, 71; i-sought, 725; with-oute, 841; a-bide, 818; a-ferde, 1337, &c. These slight deviations from the MS., which are always indicated in the footnotes, seemed advisable on account of the great help they afford the reader in understanding the text. More important emendations and corrections of evident scribal blunders and other mistakes are given in the foot-notes, and will be found explained in the Notes.
The Index of Names will be useful to those who wish to compare the Sowdan with any other version of the romance.
The Glossarial Index contains besides the obsolete terms all those words the spelling or the signification of which essentially differs from that now accepted. Words which show only slight orthographical variations from their modern form have not been included, as the reader will have no difficulty in identifying them.
In conclusion I have the pleasant duty of acknowledging the invaluable assistance which Professor Zupitza at all times readily and freely gave me. My best thanks are also due to Mr. Furnivall and to Mr. Napier for their kind advice and suggestions, and to Mr. Herrtage for collating a transcript of the poem with the MS.
EMIL HAUSKNECHT.
Berlin, January, 1881.
1 Histoire Poét., p. 133–4.
2 Gautier, Epopées, ii. 308.
3 Cf. the French Fierabras, l. 84; Sir Ferumbras, l. 102; Sowdone, l. 1067.
4 Thus in Scarron, Gigant, iii.
5 Pantagruel, ii. chap. 1.
6 See the most interesting account of this piece and its curious manner of representation in Histoire Littéraire de la France, xvii. 720–21.
7 Gautier, Epopées, ii. p. 308; and Histoire Poétique, p. 99.
8 See Huon de Bourdeaux, edd. Guessard and Grandmaison, p. xxxviii.
9 See G. Nottebohm, Thematisches Verzeichniss der im Druck erschienenen Werke von Franz Schubert. Wien, 1874.—Op. 76.
10 Cf. besides, Histoire Poétique, pp. 97, 143, 155, 214, 251; Epopées françaises, ii. pp. 307–9; and the Préface of the French edition of Fierabras.
11 See also Mone, Uebersicht der niederländischen Volksliteratur älterer Zeit. Tübingen, 1836. p. 56.
12 Cf. Warton, Hist. of Eng. Poetry, 1824, vol. i. pp. 147–8.
13 It is worthy of notice that the account of the Fierabras romance as given by Barbour, may be considered, on the whole, as identical with the subject of the French Fierabras or the English Syr Ferumbras, but not with the Sowdan, as there is no mention made of the combat before Rome, nor any trace of what makes up the first part of the Sowdan. But the spelling Lawyn for Balan agrees with the spelling of the same name in the Sowdan. As to the relics mentioned in the passage above, they differ from all other versions.
14 In the Sowdan the Bridgeward is called Alagolofre; cf. Index of Names.
15 This MS. consisting of 71 parchment leaves in 4to, with coloured initials at the beginning of each rhyme-strophe, had formerly been in the possession “Majoris Monasterii congregationis Sancti Mauri,” at Paris. Having passed through many hands during the French Revolution, it finally came to the Library of Wallerstein.
16 Der Roman von Ferabras, provenzalisch. Berlin, 1829.
17 British Museum, MS. Reg. 15. E. vi.
18 Cf. also the Préface of the French Fierabras, p. iv.
19 See Leben und Werke der Troubadours, by Friedrich Diez, Zwickau, 1829, p. 613 note, and Berliner Jahrbücher für wissenschaftliche Kritik, 1831.
20 In a footnote to his Histoire de la Poésie scandinave, p. 183, where he says:—“Le roman de Ferabras, publié à Berlin par M. Bekker, est . . . évidemment traduit du français, et en a conservé trop de formes et d’expressions pour avoir la moindre valeur grammaticale.”
21 Fierabras chanson de geste, edd. Krœber and Servois, in the collection of the Anciens Poètes de la France.
22 For a more detailed analysis, see Histoire Poét., p. 251, and cf. the account given of the old Fierabras or Balan romance by Philippe Mousket, ed. Reiffenberg, Bruxelles, vol. I. v. ll. 4664–4716, which runs as follows:—
4664 | Puis fu Roume par force prise |
et la gent destruite et ocise | |
et li apostoile ocis | |
Castiaus-Mireors ars et pris | |
4668 | et toute la cité bruie. |
li dus Garins et sa mesnie | |
entrerent en Castiel-Croisant, | |
quar Sarrasin, Turc et Persant | |
4672 | amenerent trop grant compagne |
et devers Surie et d’Espagne; | |
si furent crestien dolant, | |
et manderent tot maintenant | |
4676 | soucours al bon roi Charlemainne |
ki sa fieste en France demainne, | |
et li rois en cele besogne | |
lor tramist Guion de Bourgogne, | |
4680 | ki nouviaus chevaliers estoit |
et des jovenes enfans avoit | |
devant çou la couronne prise. | |
et soucoururent sans faintise | |
4684 | lor bon roi en la tiere estrange |
u il n’orent ni lin ni lange. | |
en France estoient revenu | |
et soujourné et bien péu, | |
4688 | mais à cel soucours le tramist |
li rois, ki moult s’entremist,— | |
et si tramist de Normendie | |
Ricart à la ciere hardie, | |
4692 | si reprirent li Mireour: |
et dus Garins vint à l’estour, | |
ki tint Pavie en quité | |
s’ot bien Castil-Croisant gardé, | |
4696 | et Karles ot sa gent mandée, |
si vinrent de mainte contrée, | |
quar il lor faisoit tant de biens, | |
qu ’à ses amis ne faloit riens. | |
4700 | si trest vers Rome li bons rois |
et fist as paiens moult d’anois. | |
dont se combati Oliviers | |
a Fierabras ki tant fu fiers; | |
4704 | d’armes l’outra, si reconquist |
les .ii. barius qu’à Rome prist, | |
si les gieta enmi le Toivre | |
por çou que plus n’en péust boivre; | |
4708 | quar c’est bausmes ki fu remés |
dont Ihesu Cris fu embausmés. | |
puis furent mort tot li paien | |
et mis en Roume crestiien, | |
4712 | si ot autre apostoile fait |
et Karles s’en revint à hait, | |
si gratia Dieu et St. Piere, | |
que recouvrée ot sa kaiere, | |
4716 | soujourner vint dont à Parise . . . |
23 Romania, ii. 1873, pp. 1–48.
24 Cf. Jahrbuch für romanische und englische Sprache und Literatur, edd. Lemcke, vol. xiii. p. 111.
25 Printed in Verhandlungen der 28sten Versammlung deutscher Philologen und Schulmänner in Leipzig. Leipzig, 1873, p. 209 et seq.
26 Corresponding to ll. 1410 et seq. of the Ashmole Ferumbras.
27 Cf. Sir Ferumbras, ll. 8192–3.
28 Cf. also l. 2784 and Sir Ferumbras, ll. 1860 and 2059.
29 See above, p. xi, footnote, and Histoire Poétique, p. 251.
30 Cf. Grœber, Verhandlungen, pp. 217–18.
31 The following differences between the Destruction and the narration of Philippe Mousket are worthy of note:—
(i) the combat around Château-Miroir is described in a different manner in the two poems.
(ii) the scene of action, which at the end of the Destruction is transferred to Spain, remains, according to Philippe Mousket, in the neighbourhood of Rome for the whole time.
(iii) Guy of Burgundy and Richard of Normandy play a most important active part before Rome, according to Ph. Mousket, whereas in the Destruction this is not the case.
Now, as to the last two items, they must have been in the original such as they are related by Ph. Mousket. For only thus some obscure passages of Fierabras, of which even the Destruction affords no explanation, are cleared up. Thus, Fierabras, l. 1049,
which is in contradiction to the Destruction, is explained by ll. 4705–6 of Mousket’s account (see above). Only Mousket relates that Floripas has seen Guy before Rome (Fierabras, l. 2240; Ashmole Ferumbras, l. 1413), and that Richard took part at the combat there. Therefore the account as given by Ph. Mousket, agreeing with what must have been the contents of the old original, is based on a version older than the Destruction, which exhibits significant differences.
These differences between Mousket and the Destruction, as well as the fact that several references to preceding events contained in Fierabras remain unexplained by the Destruction, were some of the reasons which led me in my Dissertation, pp. 41–49, to consider the Destruction as a poem written by another author than that of the Fierabras. In order to clear up the allusions to preceding events contained in the Fierabras, the very beginning of which necessarily requires some explanatory account—a circumstance which also gave rise to the ‘episode’ of the Provençal version—the Destruction was composed as a kind of Introduction to the Fierabras, whereby it happened that some allusions remained unexplained.
32 For a description of this magnificent MS., see Sir Ferumbras, p. vi, footnote.
33 Cf. Warton, Hist. of Eng. Poetry, ii. 197–8.
34 Edited for the E. E. T. S. in 1879, by S. J. Herrtage, B.A.
35 Cf. Gautier, Epopées Françaises, i. 221.—“Rien n’est plus fréquent, dans la Chanson de Roland et dans nos poèmes les plus anciens, que la répétition double, triple et même quelquefois quadruple, de certains couplets. Cette répétition n’a pas lieu dans les mêmes termes, ni surtout avec les mêmes rimes. Tout au contraire, la même idée est reproduite en vers différents, munis d’assonances ou de rimes différentes.”
36 The variations of this MS. are printed in the Jahrbuch der roman. and engl. Sprachen, vol. ix. pp. 43 ss.
37 This edition, although printed from the MS. a, may be said to represent a group (w) of four MSS., called a b c d (see above xv). Another group (z) is formed by the MSS. E and D. Both groups belong to the same type y. Cf. Grœber, Die handschriftlichen Gestaltungen der chanson de geste Fierabras, Leipzig, 1869, p. 27, where we find the following stemma:
38 Epopées Françaises, ii. 307, and Cat. rais. des livr. de la bibl. d’Ambr. F. Didot, I, 361.
39 Grœber, Handschriftl. Gestaltungen, p. 6.
40 Jahrbuch, xiii. p. 111, and Zeitschrift für romanische Philologie, iv. p. 164.
41 “Die Vergleichung weniger aus allen Hss. bekannten Versen macht gewiss, dass H mit D und E aus der nämlichen Quelle z geflossen ist.” Jahrbuch, xiii. 113.
42 Handschriftl. Gestalt., p. 10.
43 See the note to l. 5763 of Sir Ferumbras, and cf. Fierabras, 5955.
44 The number of instances where A varies from C’s version might easily be increased. Thus we find A 340 differing from C 52/111 and from F 357; A 814 differing from C 79/3 and from F 1548; A 1616 differing from C 102/10 and from F 2424; A 1238 differing from C 92/5 and from F 2083; A 4652 differing from C 171/26 and from F 4900, &c.
45 Specimens of Early English Metrical Romances, ed. Halliwell, p. 379 et seq.
46 Histoire Poétique, p. 251; cf. also Revue critique d’Histoire et de Littérature, ii. 1869, p. 121 et seq.
47 Cf. Mr. Shelley’s Paper in Warton, Hist. of Eng. Poetry, ii. 197–8.
48 pp. 17 et seq.
49 Dissertation, p. 18.
50 Introduction to Sir Ferumbras, p. xiv.
51 The French text will be found in the Notes, which see.
52 For these names, the Index of Names may be referred to.
53 In some passages the Destruction shows also the spelling Balan, but Laban is more common.
54 See note to l. 1000.
55 See note to l. 2842.
56 Dissertation, p. 20.
57 See note to l. 1663.
58 Cf. note to l. 1723.
59 Mr. Herrtage, in his note to the Ashmol. MS., l. 259, reproduces—from the Roxburghe Club edition, Introd. p. vi.—the list of the twelve peers in the French version of the Grenville copy, 10531, which he erroneously takes for that of the Sowdan.
60 But there is one “Alorys þe erld of Brye,” mentioned in the Ashm. MS., ll. 935, 2842, 4076, &c.
61 There is one Templer mentioned in the Ashm. MS., l. 2673. But he is not identical with Tamper of the Sowdan, ll. 2641, 2667.
62 Greek σινδων. Cf. Dissertation, pp. 45–46.
63 See note to l. 2535.
64 There being only a small fragment printed of the Didot MS. (Epopées Fr. ii. 307), a comparison of the Sowdan with this version is impossible at present. But as the Didot MS. belongs to the same group as E, what results from a comparison of S with E may be assumed for the Didot MS.
65 See Zeitschrift für romanische Philologie, iv. pp. 164, 170.
66 Jahrbuch für romanische und englische Sprache und Literatur, xiii. p. 111.
67 This example is not very striking, as the spelling Ferumbras may simply have been retained from the first part of the poem; see above, p. xxxi.
68 Syr Ferumbras, Introduction, p. xiv, footnote.
69 See Handschriftliche Gestaltungen, p. 14, and Dissert., p. 29.
70 Histoire Poétique, p. 157.
71 And to which only a few very insignificant additions were made by the author; see Hist. Poét., p. 99, bottom.
72 See Morris’s Preface to Genesis and Exodus, Skeat’s Introduction to Havelock the Dane, and Mall’s edition of Harrowing of Hell (Breslau, 1871).
73 See Sweet, Anglia, iii. 152.
74 Cf. Mall, Harrowing of Hell, p. 18.
75 Cf. Schipper, Alexiuslegenden, 98/121.
76 See note to l. 939.
77 “This elision of a final d in such words as hond, lond, sheld, held, &c., is by no means uncommon in ancient poetry, and arises simply from pronunciation.”—Morris, Specimens of Early English, 320/261.
78 Cf. Mr. Nicol’s Paper in the Academy of June 23, 1877, vol. xi. p. 564, col. 1, and Seventh Annual Address of the President to the Philol. Soc., p. 2.
79 See the note.
80 Although l. 25 says that the story of the Sowdan “is written in Romance,” this cannot induce us to consider our poem as a mere translation. It is, on the contrary, a free reproduction of a French original.
81 Cf. also Lindsay’s History of Squyer Meldrum, l. 390:
“Like Mars the God Armypotent.”
82 Cf. Prioress’s Tale, ed. Skeat (Clarendon Press Series), p. xx; and Furnivall’s Trial Forewords, p. 111.
83 Cf. Chaucer, ed. Morris, i. 205, footnote.
84 Bibliotheca Heberiana, Part xi. p. 162. MSS. Lot 1533.
85 Ed. Halliwell, p. 379 et seq.
86 For instances, see the following words:—Atame, alayned, ameved, assorte, avente, forcer, &c.
87 London. Printed by William Nicol, Shakspere Press, MDCCCLIV.
SINCE the Introduction was written, I have had an opportunity of seeing the Hanover MS. of the French Fierabras. The kind offices of Professor Koner exerted on my behalf secured me the consent of the Administration of the Royal Hanoverian Library to have the MS. sent to Berlin, and their most generous permission to consult it freely in the Reading Room of the University Library.
Having now compared the Sowdan more closely with the Hanover MS., I must state that the final result arrived at in my investigation concerning the original of the Sowdan (cf. p. xxxii) is in no way altered.
As already stated above (p. xxxii), and as the subsequent examination and the passages of H quoted below will serve to confirm, the Hanover version is, generally speaking, the same as the printed version of the Fierabras, differing only in slight variations of readings.
The names in which S differs from F, but agrees with H, are already spoken of on p. xxxi. But there are several others in the spelling of which H agrees with F, but differs from S. Thus we find Balans or Balant in H for Laban in S; Guarin, H, leaf 80, back, F 438 = Generyse, S 1135; Agolafres, H, leaf 81 = Alagolofer, S 2135; Amiotte, H leaf 83, back = Barrokk, S 2939, etc.
As to the subject-matter, there are no instances where S, differing from F, agrees with H. In all points in which S differs from F we find it also differing from H.
Thus the game of blowing a burning coal, in the description of ‹l› which S slightly differs from F, is related in H with nearly the same words as in F. As, besides the small fragment printed by Grœber in the Jahrbuch, xiii, and some few remarks in the Zeitschrift für rom. Phil., nothing is known of the Hanover MS., the following passages printed here may serve to show how little H differs from F. The game of the coal (S 1996–2016, F 2907–2934) is thus described in H, leaf 58:—
“Veillard, dist Lucafer, vous ni savez juer,
Vous ne savez en France le grant charboun soffler.
Certes, ceo dist li dus, mais n’en oie soffler.
Et respont li payen: Mais te feray mostrer.
Ly payen vait le duc au grant fowel mener.
Quant Rollant l’ad veu, a Berard l’ad mostre
Ore porres boue jeu ver et esgarder.
Dahait qui ne laira ly et Naimes juer.
Lucafer se beysa pur un tison combrer,
Trestote le plus ardant quil i poet trover,
Par tiel air soffla le fu qil li fist voler.
Puis ad dist a Names ‘Ore vous covent soffler.’
Names prist le tison qui bien se sout aider,
Vers le payen s’en va pur le tison sofler,
Pur ceo le fist ly dus qa ly se volt meller,
Si suffla le tison qe le fist allumer,
Le barbe et le menton fist au payen bruler,
Tres parmy le visaie en fist la flame virer,
Qe par un sule petite qe nel fist souuiler.
Quant le voit ly payen, le sanc quida deueher.
Il jette a .ij. ses maines, qi le quide frapper,
Mais ly dus le ferry tres parmy le costes,
Qe les oilz de la teste ly fist en fu voler.
Puys l’ad pris par le flank, s’il voit en le fu ruer.
Lichiers, dist dus Names, Dex te poet mal doner,
Tu me quidoies ore come fole cy trover.”
The distribution of the relics, in which S (cf. note to l. 3238) differs from F 6195 et seq. is related as follows in H, leaf 100:—
“AU baron seint Dynis fu mult grant l’assemblee
Au perron au londy fu la messe chantee,
Illok fu la corone partie et desseveree,
L’un moite fu a saint Dynis donee
Et un clow ansiement, cest verite provee,
De la Corone fu un partie a Ais portee,
A Compaigne est l’ensigne en l’eglise honoree,
Et les altres .ij. clowes a Orliens fu enveiee,
Maint presant fist Charls de France la loie
Des saintisme reliqes, Jhesu de maiestes.
En l’onur de Deu est mainte eglise fondee,
La feste de lendit fu pur iceo estoree.
Jaiaz videront cens ne taille donee. ‹li›
Ne tardoit que .iiij. ans k’Espaigne fu gastee.
La fu la treison de Rollant porpensee,
Qe Ganes le vendist a la gent diffaee,
Puys fu as chiuals sa chars destreinee,
Pinables en fu mortz de suz Lyons en la pree,
La le vengea Terris au trenchant del espee,
Puys fu pendu armes par gulee paree,
Toutz iours vegnent traitors a mal destinee
Ou aloignee ou apres ia ni aueront duree.
Charles voit a Orliens, la chancheon est finee
Au deu vous commande, tote j’ai ma chancon fine.
De cels romance est bone la fine et l’entree,
Et en mileue et partote qi bien l’ad escoutee
La beneiceon aez de Deu et del virgine honore. Amen.”
The miracle (F 6101–6123)88 of the glove, in which Charles had placed fragments of the thorns, remaining suspended in the air for over an hour, the description of which is omitted in the Sowdan (cf. Dissert., p. 29), is related as follows in H, leaf 99:—
“L’EMPERERS de France fist forement a loier
Il a fait un table sur .ij. trestes lever.
Et par de sur un paille qui fu fait outre mer.
Illok fist Charl la corone aporter,
Puis ad fait l’arcevesqe partir et deviser,
Si ad fait les reliqes mult bien envoluper,
Dedens son mestre coffres les a fait deffermer,
Et les altres reliqes qe il voudra aporter.
Les petites espignons qil vist esgruner,
De la saint corone qil fist demenbrer,
Trestote les acoillye nostre emperer ber,
Et les mist en son gant qanqil pout trover.
Un chivaler le tent qil vist lez ly ester,
Mais al ne l’aperceut my qe nele oit parler.
Charlemayn retiret sa mayne, si lesse le gant aler.
Et dex a fait le gant enmy l’air arester
Tant que d .j. leue en pout home bien aler;
Kar la presse fu grant, ne l’en puis remenbrer.
Charlemayn comande l’ewe apporter.
De son gant ly sovengre si quant il dust laver,
Mais ne seet a ky le comanda abailier,
Par desur la gent le vist en l’air esteer,
L’arcevesqe la monstre et tuit l’altre barne.
Ceo fu mult grant merveille, home en doit bien parler,
Charls a pris son gant, s’est assis au soper.”
H, leaf 37, agrees with F, l. 1043, in making Oliver drink of the bottles of balm, which is not mentioned in the Sowdan, l. 1190 (cf. p. xxix). ‹lii›
Similarly we find S 2604 differing from H, leaf 62, where we read Basyns (= Basin, F 3313) instead of Bryer.
Again H, l. 40, agreeing exactly with F, l. 1329 et seq., differs from S 1279–82 (cf. p. xxix).
Instead of Floripas, S 1515, it is Brulans, H, l. 49, and F 1949, who advises the Soudan not to slay the prisoners.
The names of the twelve peers are the same in H as in F (cf. p. xxvii); and the whole scene of the peers being sent one after the other on a mission to Laban (cf. note to l. 1665 of the Sowdan) is described exactly alike in F 2263–2282 and in H, leaf 51, back, with the only difference that the names of the peers are given in a different order in both versions, Richard of Normandy, who is sent off as the sixth in F, being the second in H.
These variations of S from H clearly exemplify the impossibility of regarding the Hanover MS. as the original of the Sowdan. But as on the whole these differences are not of a very significant nature, and as, moreover, part of these variations may perhaps be attributed to the favourite habit of the author of going his own way in the arrangement of the subject-matter and in some minor points, whereas in the essential course of the events he strictly adhered to his source (see above p. xxxviii, and cf. note to l. 2535); and as besides there are several names, the spelling of which differs in F, agreeing in S and H, I think there can be no doubt that the original of the second part of the Sowdan was a version similar to the Hanover MS.
If now we compare the Hanover version with the Ashmole Ferumbras more closely than has been possible on page xx, there are some instances where A, whilst differing from F, agrees with H.
H. | A. | ||
---|---|---|---|
lf. 27. | Ha Glout, dist Karlemaines, | 163. | A glotoun, saide þe Emperer |
lf. 27. | Que puis vivre que cest jours fu passes | 175. | Ke lyve he noȝt þys day to be evene |
lf. 25, bk. | Ses chiuals ad reine à un arbre rasmee | 91. | Þarto ys stede þan tyeþe he |
Et garda les leges tote contreval li pree |
Nevertheless, the following passage in which A agrees with F, but differs from H, will at once show the impossibility of regarding H as the original of A. ‹liii›
A. | H. | ||
---|---|---|---|
302. | Þanne þer come bifore Charloun, Gweneloun and Hardree | lf. 28, bk. | Atant se sunt drecie Guinelons et Alores |
In other instances A is found differing from H as well as from F. Thus the name of Enfachoun, A 4652, which is Effraons in F 4900, does not occur at all in H, which in the passage corresponding to F 4900, as well as in that corresponding to F 4913, reads Affricons li Geans.
Again, in the story of Myloun, in which A, l. 2008 et seq., differs from F, we find H disagreeing from F, 2734 et seq., and from A:—
“Volez vous queor de feme essaier et esprover
Del riche duc Milon vous deverez remenbrer,
Qe tant nori Galans qe ly fist adouber,
Puys ly tolly sa feile Gabaen au vis cler,
L’enfes Marsilion en fist desherriter.—
Quant l’entent Floripas, du sens quida deueer.”
—(H, leaf 56.)
But in most cases in which F differs from A, H agrees with F.
Thus we find Ferumbras challenging only six French knights in H, lf. 26, as in F, 84, 105, instead of twelve in A, l. 102.
In A, l. 5204, Floripas, swooning away, is upheld by Oliver, whereas in F, 5373, and in H, lf. 90, it is Guy who keeps her from falling.
For Howel of saint Miloun, A 5574, we read Huon de saint Lis in F 5792, and Hugon de saint Lis in H, lf. 95, bk.
As in F 2912 it is to Berard that Roland speaks in H, lf 57, bk., and not to Olyver, as in A 2234.
That Maubyn scales the walls by means of a ladder of leather (A 2406) is not mentioned in F 3061, nor in H, lf. 59, bk.
In A 1386 Floripas gives Oliver, who is wounded, a warm draught, which heals every wound; in F 2209, as well as in H, lf. 51, it is by a bit of the mandrake plant that he is healed.
The maid-attendant mentioned in A 1238 (chamberere) is a man-attendant in F 2083 (chamberlenc) and in H, lf. 49, bk. (chamberlayn).
There is no trace of the additional lines of A, ll. 4867–4875, to be found in H, lf. 86 bk., nor in F, 5094.
Among the relics spoken of in A, there is nowhere a mention made of the signe. In H we find the signe always mentioned ‹liv› together with the crown and the nails, just as in F. In the passage quoted above from H, lf. 100, and in the line which corresponds to F 6094, we find ensigne instead of signe; but ensigne certainly must be looked upon as a clerical blunder. In the other passages in which we find “the winding sheet, or shroud, of the Lord” mentioned in H it is also called signe:—
“Et rendrai la corone et le signe
honore.”
H, lf. 42 = F,
1498; and H, lf. 45, bk. =
F, 1805.
“Et les saintismes clowes et le
signe honores.”
H,
lf. 57 = F, 2829.
That the signe cannot be the “inscription of the cross” (cf. Introduction, p. xxx) is proved by an additional line of the Hanover MS., in which the Archbishop is said to have covered the heads of the French with the signe:—
“Puys a trait l’ensigne qui bien estoit ovres
Engenolant l’ad ly Rois tote oue lermes baises,
Plus flairoit ducement que basine enbasines.
Quant Franceis l’ont veu, ele vous effraes,
De pite et de ioy fu chescous enplores.
L’ercevesqe le prist, mult fu bien purpenses,
Et nos Franceis en a les chefs envolupes,
Puis le mist sur le paille qest a or ornes,
Od les altres relikes dont illi out asses.”
H, lf. 98, corresponding to
F, 6094 et seq.
Abstaining now from citing any more passages where H agrees with F, but differs from A, I think the few quotations above will suffice to show the impossibility of regarding the Hanover MS. as the original of the Ashmole Ferumbras, notwithstanding that there are some resemblances of A to H (cf. p. xx). Therefore the result arrived at on p. xxi as to the original of the Ashmolean version is in no way altered by the detailed comparison of A with H.
Laban, the Soudan of Babylon, who was residing at Agremore in Spain, went to the chase in a wood near the sea (p. 2). Being tired of hunting he sat down under a tree, and, perceiving a ship drawing near unto the shore, he sent one of his men to hail the vessel and to inquire for news. The interpreter of the vessel informs the soudan that the ship, freighted with a rich cargo at Babylon designed as a ‹lv› present to Laban, had been driven by violent storms to the shore near Rome, where the ship had been robbed, and many of its people had been slain by the Romans. He solicits the Soudan to revenge this insult. Laban promises to make them pay dearly for it (p. 3). He convokes a war-council, and assembles a hundred thousand men and seven hundred sail. Himself goes, with Ferumbras his son and Floripas his daughter, in a dromond richly adorned (p. 4). They disembark in the haven of Rome, slay all Christians, and burn towns, abbeys, and churches. The pope of Rome assembles his council (p. 5). Duke Savaris is to meet the Saracens. With ten thousand men he draws near the Soudan’s pavilion on the shore (p. 6); they slay ten thousand Saracens. The Romans, though masters of the field, cautiously retire within the walls of the city. Lukafer of Baldas, having scoured the country, brings ten thousand Christian maidens to the Soudan, who orders them to be put to death (p. 7). Lukafer demands Floripas for his wife, in return for which he promises her father to bring Charlemagne and his twelve peers to the foot of his throne. Floripas agrees to accept him when he has fulfilled his promise. The next morning Lukafer assaults the city, but the ditches being too deep (p. 8), the Saracens are obliged to retire. On the following day the assault is renewed, the ditches are, on Mavon’s advice, filled with faggots. After a sharp conflict, where there were ten thousand Saracens slain by the stones of the Romans, the heathens are obliged to withdraw (p. 9). This second repulse makes the Soudan almost mad with vexation; he chides his gods. But Lukafer told him that he had learned from a spy that Savaris would, on the following day, come out again to fight with them. He now intended, when Savaris was engaged in the battle, to unfold a banner made exactly like that of the Romans, and to attempt, by this stratagem, to be admitted within the gates. And so it turned out: the Romans mistaking him for Savaris returning from his sally, he entered the main tower, and slew all therein. Savaris, noticing the artifice of the enemy, and seeing his troop reduced to seventy-two men, turned back, but found the gate shut (p. 10). Estragot, a black giant of Ethiopia, slays him with his steel-mace. The Pope having summoned his council, a senator suggested the necessity of ‹lvi› sending messengers to Charlemagne to ask his aid. They all assented, and three messengers (p. 11) left the city by a postern at midnight; they passed the enemy’s camp without being noticed by any wight. On the next morning Laban attempted a third assault; he commanded every man to throw pikes and bills over the walls to kill the Romans, and ordered the ships to go up the water with their boats bound to the mast, that they might fight in close combat. Near the tower there stood a bulwark, or “bastile,” which was a strong defence to the wall. It was thrown down by stones hurled from an engine. Laban, growing proud from this event, summoned the Romans to surrender. Instead of an answer a Roman hurled a dart at his breast-plate, but his hauberk shielded him. The Soudan, more than mad, charged Ferumbras to destroy them all (p. 12), and enjoined Fortibrance and Mavon to direct their engines against the walls. The great glutton Estragot, with his heavy mace, smote on the gates and brake them in pieces. But as he was entering one of the gates, they let the portcullis fall, which crushed him to the ground, where he lay crying like a devil of hell. The Romans rejoiced, but the Saracens grieved. They withdrew to their tents, leaving behind the corpse of Estragot, whose soul went up to Mahound (p. 13). The Pope called all his people to St. Peter’s and proposed to them to attempt a sally with twenty thousand men, to attack the enemy before day-break within their camp, and to leave ten thousand for the defence of the city. In the morning the Pope displayed the banner of Rome, and after a prayer for the preservation of the city, they marched out. But Ferumbras, going his rounds (p. 14), noticed their coming, sounded the alarm, and drew up his troops. Then began a fierce struggle. Ferumbras slew Sir Bryer of Apulia (p. 15) and the worthy Hubert. Nine thousand heathens were killed and eight thousand Romans. Lukafer destroyed eighteen Romans; he also slew Gyndard, a senator of Rome, who had killed ten Saracens. Then came the Pope with a great escort and his banner before him. Ferumbras, supposing him to be the sovereign (p. 16), burst open the thick crowd and threw him down to the ground. But having opened his ventail, he saw his tonsure, and recognized the Pope. “Fie, priest,” he said, “what doest thou here in the battle-field? ‹lvii› It would be a shame for me to slay thee. Go home and think of thy choir-service.” The Pope, being glad to get off so easily, retired to Rome with five thousand men, fifteen thousand being killed. Charlemagne, having learned from the messenger the great disaster which had befallen the Romans, said he would not desist until he had chased the Soudan and Ferumbras out of Christendom (p. 17). He gave ten thousand pounds of francs to his nephew, Guy of Burgundy, and sent him off with orders to advance against the Soudan by forced marches. Himself would follow as soon as possible. In the mean time Laban reminded Lukafer of his vaunting promise to bring him Charlemagne and his twelve peers in return for his daughter Floripas. Lukafer said he would do all he had promised. With ten thousand men he attacked the city on one side, the other being assaulted by Ferumbras. The combat continued as long as daylight lasted. At night they retired to their tents (p. 18). Then treason was planned by Isres, who by inheritance possessed the guard of the chief gate of the town. He went to the Soudan and offered to betray the city on condition that his life and property should be spared. The Soudan promised it. Ferumbras with twenty thousand men went with Isres, but on entering the gate he caused the traitor’s head to be struck off by the portcullis and to be carried on the point of a spear through the city. “Treason,” cried the people (p. 19), when Ferumbras advanced into Rome. All the streets were soon covered with dead men. Ferumbras went to St. Peter’s, seized the relics, the cross, the crown, and the nails, burned the whole city, and carried away all the treasures and the gold to Agremore in Spain, where the Soudan went back to stay. Three months and three days they spent there in great festivities, making offerings to their gods, and burning frankincense in their honour. They drank the blood of beasts and milk, and ate honey, and snakes fried with oil (p. 20). When Sir Guy, approaching, drew near Rome, he found the whole city in flames. He grieved much that he had arrived too late, and resolved to wait there for Charlemagne, and then to tell him how Laban had burnt the city, and had sent the relics to Agremore, his principal town in Spain. Soon king Charles advanced to rescue Rome with his twelve peers and three hundred thousand soldiers (p. 21). Roland ‹lviii› led the vanguard, Oliver the rear, and the king was with the main body. The provisions were conveyed by sea. Guy, seeing the army come, went to meet the king, and told him the mischief done by the Soudan, who, moreover, had made a vow to seek Charles in France in order to afflict him with grief. “He will find me near,” said Charles, “and shall pay dearly for it. Unless he consents to be baptized (p. 22), he shall never see Babylon again.” They all took ship without delay. Propitious winds drove them into the river Gase, where they landed, thirty miles from Agremore, and laid waste the country. Laban, hearing this news, was astonished at Charles’s presumption (p. 23). He assembled all his barons, and charged them to bring him alive that glutton that called himself king of France, and to slay the rest of his army. Ferumbras went forth with many Saracens. He meets with Roland. They deal each other heavy strokes. Oliver cuts off a quarter of Lukafer’s shield. The combat lasted the whole day. Well fought the twelve peers (p. 24). Ferumbras charges Oliver. King Charles, seeing this, rides at Ferumbras, and strikes his helm with a heavy mace. Ferumbras cannot approach him on account of the crowd. Charlemagne slew thirty Saracens with his sword Mounjoy. Lukafer of Baldas encountering Charles told him that he had promised the Soudan to bring him Charles and the twelve peers. Charles strikes him on his helmet (p. 25), but Lukafer is rescued by a great throng. Roland, drawing Durnedale, cleared a space around him, and hammered the heads of the Saracens. So did the other peers, and thirty thousand Saracens were slain. At night the pagans quit the field. Ferumbras vows never to desist until he has conquered Roland and Oliver (p. 26) and been crowned king at Paris. Charles went to his pavilion and thanked God and St. Mary of France. He praised the elder knights for having won the victory, and exhorted the young ones to take example by them. They all make merry and go to supper. The Saracens address a prayer to the red Mars Armipotent (p. 27), to grant the Mahometans the victory over the Christians (p. 28). In order to recruit the late losses in his army, the Soudan sent for his vassals, and assembled more than three hundred thousand Saracens at Agremore. He addressed them (p. 29) in order to increase their ‹lix› ardour, ordered a solemn sacrifice to his gods, and charged Ferumbras to march with thirty thousand of his people against the Christian king (whom he wished to teach courtesy), and to slay all his men except Roland and Oliver (p. 30), if they would renounce their gods. Ferumbras led out his troops; until arriving near Charles’s camp, he ordered them to halt in a wood, and advanced with only ten of his men to the camp of Charlemagne, and offered to fight at once against six of his peers. If he should conquer them, he would lead them away to his father’s hall; but if he should be conquered, he would be Charles’s man. The king sent for Roland and ordered him to undertake the combat. Roland refuses (p. 31), because Charles had praised the old knights: they might show their prowess now. Charles, vexed, smites Roland on the mouth, so that the blood springs from his nose, and he calls him a traitor. Roland draws his sword, but the other barons separate them and try to conciliate them. Meanwhile Oliver, who being sorely wounded kept his bed, on hearing of this dispute, had armed himself and went to Charles. He reminds the king of his long services, in reward for which he demands the battle. Charles remonstrates with him. But Oliver insists (p. 32). He rides to the forest, and finds Ferumbras alighted under a tree, to a branch of which his steed was tied. “Arise,” he said, “I am come to fight with thee.” Ferumbras, without moving, demands his name. “I am Generyse, a young knight lately dubbed.” Ferumbras observes: “Charles is a fool to send thee; go and tell him to send me Roland and Oliver and such four other douzeperes. For little honour were it to me to fight with thee.” “Spare thy words,” replies Oliver, “and take thy arms” (p. 33). Ferumbras is wrath and seizes his helmet, which Oliver assists him to lace. Ferumbras thanks him, courteously bowing to him. They mount their steeds, and rushing together like fire of thunder, they have their lances broken. They draw their swords. Ferumbras smites Oliver on his helmet so that the fire flies. Oliver strikes at the head of Ferumbras, breaks away the circle of his helmet, and the sword glancing off down his back, he cuts off two bottles of balm (p. 34), which he throws into the river. Ferumbras tells him that they were invaluable to a wounded man, and that he should atone for their loss with his life. He ‹lx› strikes at Oliver, who wards off the blow with his shield, but his steed is killed under him. Oliver quickly starts up and tries to kill his adversary’s horse, but Ferumbras rides off and ties it to a hazel. “Yield thyself to me,” says Ferumbras, “believe on Mahound, and I will make thee a duke in my country, and give thee my sister” (p. 35). “Ere I yield to thee,” answered Oliver, “thou shalt feel my strokes.” They fight for a considerable time; the blood runs from both their bodies. By mutual consent they stop to take breath. Ferumbras again asks Oliver his name and kin. “Thou must be one of the twelve peers, as thou fightest so well.” “I am Oliver, cousin to Charlemagne.” “Thou art welcome here,” says Ferumbras; “thou slewest my uncle (p. 36); now thou shalt pay the penalty.” The fight continued the whole day. At last Oliver, smiting Ferumbras upon the helmet, had his sword broken. He ran to the steed at the tree and seized a sword that was hanging there, but in turning on Ferumbras, he received a blow that made him kneel down (p. 37). But he returns Ferumbras a fearful stroke. Charles, seeing Oliver on his knees, prayed to Christ that he might grant the victory over the pagan. An angel announced to him that his prayer was heard. Charles thanks God (p. 38). The fight begins again. Ferumbras breaks his sword on Oliver’s helmet. He runs for another and asks Oliver to surrender. But Oliver aims at him a blow which cuts his hauberk, so that his bowels are laid bare. Ferumbras implores his mercy, and consents to be christened, his gods having proved false. He requested him to take his hauberk (p. 39), to fetch his horse, and to carry him to his own tent. But the Saracens who lay concealed in the wood rush out. Oliver, being surrounded, sets down Ferumbras under an olive-tree, and defends himself with his sword, dealing the Saracens many a hard blow. Then Roland rushed into the throng of the enemy and slew many (p. 40). His horse being killed by arrows and darts, he fights on foot, but his sword breaking, he is taken and led away. Oliver rides to rescue him, but his horse being also killed, he is overpowered and bound. Both were conducted to Lukafer of Baldas (p. 41). Charles sees them, and calls for a rescue. Many enemies were slain by the French barons, but the Saracens had fled with their prisoners, and ‹lxi› Charles is obliged to turn back. Under a holm tree they find Ferumbras, whom the king is going to put to death. But on his requesting to be baptized Charles took pity on him (p. 42), led him to his tent, and ordered a surgeon to attend him. He soon recovered, and bishop Turpin baptized him by the name of Floreyn. But he continued to be called Ferumbras all his life. Afterwards he was known as Floreyn of Rome on account of his holiness. Roland and Oliver being brought to the Soudan, Laban enquires their names. They confess their names (p. 43). The Soudan swears they shall both be executed the next morning before his dinner. But Floripas advises him to detain them as hostages, and to remember his son Ferumbras, for whom they might be exchanged. The Soudan, finding her counsel good, orders his gaoler Bretomayn to imprison them, but to leave them without food (p. 44). At high tide the sea filled their deep cells, so that they suffered much from the salt water, from their wounds, and from hunger. On the sixth day Floripas, who was gathering flowers in her garden, heard them lament. Moved to compassion, she asks her governess Maragound to help her in getting food for the prisoners. Maragound refuses, and reminds Floripas of her father’s command. Floripas, thinking of a trick, called to her governess to come to a window (p. 45) and see the porpoises sporting beneath. As Maragound is looking out, Floripas pushes her into the flood. She then asks Bretomayn to let her see the prisoners. The gaoler threatened to complain to her father, but Floripas, having seized his key-clog, dashed out his brains. She then went to tell her father she had surprised the gaoler feeding the prisoners (p. 46) and promising to deliver them, wherefore she had slain him. The Soudan gives the prisoners into her guard. She now proceeded to the prison, asked the prisoners what they wanted, and promised to protect them from any harm (p. 47). She let down a rope, and with her maidens drew up both, and led them to her apartments. There they ate, took a bath, and went to bed. The Soudan knew nothing of his prisoners being in Floripas’s chamber. Meanwhile Charlemagne tells Guy that he must go to the Soudan to demand the surrender of Roland and Oliver, and of the relics of Rome. Naymes of Bavaria represents that a messenger to the Soudan ‹lxii› (p. 48) would certainly be slain; and that they ought to be anxious not to lose any more besides Roland and Oliver. Then said the king: “By God, thou shalt go with Guy.” Ogier the Dane remonstrates, but is ordered to go too. So are Thierry of Ardane, and Folk Baliant, Aleroys, and Miron of Brabant. Bishop Turpin kneels down to implore the king’s mercy, but he must go too, as well as Bernard of Spruwse (p. 49) and Brier of Mountdidier. The knights take leave and start. About the same time the Soudan having assembled his council, Sortibrance and Brouland (p. 50) advise him to send twelve knights, and to bid Charles to give up Ferumbras and to withdraw from his country. The knights are despatched; near Mantrible they meet with the Christian messengers. Duke Naymes enquires whither they intend to go (p. 51). Having heard their message, the delegates of Charlemagne cut off their heads, which they take with them to present to the Soudan at Agremore. Laban was just dining when Naymes delivers his message: “God confound Laban and all his Saracens, and save Charles, who commands thee to send back his two nephews and to restore the relics” (p. 52). They then produce the heads of the Soudan’s messengers. The Soudan vowed a vow that they should all ten be hanged as soon as he had finished his dinner. But Floripas recommended him to put off his resolution until a general council of his barons had determined on the best way to procure the liberation of Ferumbras. Thereupon the Soudan gives the prisoners into her guard. Floripas leads the knights into her tower (p. 53), where they were glad to find Roland and Oliver. They told each other how they had fared. After washing, they dined off venison, bread, and wine. The following day Floripas asks Naymes his name, and enquires after Guy of Burgundy, whom she had loved for a long time (p. 54), and for whom she would do all she could for their benefit, and would be baptized if he would agree to love her in return. Naymes tells Guy to take her for his wife; but Guy refuses, as he never will take a wife unless she be given him by Charles. But Roland and Oliver persuade him, so that he at last consents. Floripas, holding a golden cup of wine (p. 55), kissed him, and requested him to drink to her after the fashion of her country; she then would drink to him in return. They all ‹lxiii› make merry, and prepare to assail the Soudan at supper on the following day. Meanwhile Lukafer comes to the Soudan and asks leave to see the prisoners, in order to know how Floripas guards them. Finding the door locked (p. 56), he burst it open with a blow of his fist, and told them he was come to speak to them, and to enquire after Charlemagne. Duke Naymes answers. Lukafer then asks what amusements they have after dinner. Naymes says: “Some joust, some sing, some play at chess.” “I will teach you a new game,” says Lukafer (p. 57). With a thread he fastened a needle on a pole and put a burning coal upon it. He blew it at Naymes’s beard and burnt it. Naymes waxed wroth, and snatching a burning brand from the fire he smites at Lukafer, and throws him into the fire, where he was burnt to charcoal. Floripas applauds this, but points out their danger, and advises them to arm. At supper time she goes to her father (p. 58). As they were sitting at table, the twelve peers rushed in and slew all whom they met. Laban, pursued by Oliver, jumps out of a window on to the sea-shore and escaped without injury. They killed all in the castle, and then drew up the bridges and shut the gates. Laban vowed a vow that he would hang them all and burn his daughter. He sent to Mantrible for troops (p. 59) and engines and besieged Agremore. Floripas recommends the peers to enjoy themselves. In the morning the Soudan attacks the castle, but is repulsed (p. 60). He accuses his gods of sleepiness and shakes them to rouse them out of sleep. Brouland tells him, as the castle is strong and well stored with provisions, the peers will hold it very long; but if he would send orders to Alagolofer, the bridge-keeper at Mantrible, not to allow any one to pass without leave (p. 61), they would get no assistance from Charles and die from hunger. Espiard, the Soudan’s messenger, is despatched to Mantrible, and commands the giant not to suffer any one to pass the bridge (p. 62). Alagolofer drew four and twenty chains across the bridge. Meanwhile the Soudan assaults the castle again, but the twelve peers slew three hundred Saracens (p. 63). Laban threatens to hang them, and utters imprecations against Floripas, who returns them. He then calls for Mavon, his engineer, and orders him to direct a mangonel against the walls. Mavon knocked down a piece of the battlements. ‹lxiv› Roland and Oliver lament; they are comforted by Floripas (p. 64). Guy kills Marsedage, the king of Barbary, by throwing a dart at him. The Saracens stop the attack to bury Marsedage, and bewail him seven nights and seven days. Then the Soudan more closely blockades the castle (p. 65). The provisions being exhausted, Roland complains of Charles’s forgetfulness; but Floripas cheers him up, saying she possessed a magic girdle, which was a talisman against hunger and thirst for those who wore it. They all successively put it on, and felt as if they had feasted (p. 66). Laban wondered at their endurance, but at last remembering the girdle, he induced Mapin to attempt to steal it at night. Mapin entered the chamber of Floripas (p. 67) through a chimney. He finds the girdle and puts it on, but Floripas perceives him and cries out. Roland hurries to her assistance, cuts off Mapin’s head, and throws him out through the window into the sea without noticing the girdle. Floripas, seeing her girdle lost, is much grieved; Roland comforts her. They agree to attempt a sally to obtain food (p. 68). In the morning Naymes and Ogier remain in the castle, while the others start and surprise the Saracens sleeping in their huts. They slew three hundred, and carried off as much food as they could bear (p. 69). The Soudan is enraged and is going to burn his gods, but, appeased by his wise men, he sacrifices again, and is assoiled by the priests. Laban holds council (p. 70). A new assault begins, but so many of the assailants were slain by the showers of stones hurled down by the peers that the ditches are filled with dead bodies. The Saracens retire. But soon a second attack ensues. There being no stones, Floripas gave them her father’s silver and gold to cast amongst the assailants. The Soudan in alarm for his treasure gives up the assault (p. 71). He is enraged with his gods, and smites Mahound so that he fell on his face; but the priests induce him to kneel down and ask forgiveness (p. 72). Meanwhile Roland exhorted Richard of Normandy to go on a message to Charles, that he might come to their rescue. They all would, the following morning before day-break, make an attack on the Saracens, and meanwhile he should steal off in the darkness. In the morning they sally out. Floripas and her maidens draw up the bridges after them. Richard went off towards Mantrible (p. 73). ‹lxv› The others slay many Saracens; but Guy, overpowered by the Babylonians, is taken prisoner. Laban asks his name. Guy tells him. He is to be hanged. Three hundred Saracens crowding near the gate of the castle, attempted to prevent the other peers from entering. A fearful struggle begins (p. 74), in which Sir Bryer is killed. At last the Saracens take to flight. The peers retire inside the castle, taking the corpse of Bryer with them. Floripas enquires after Guy, and on hearing of his capture, begins to lament despairingly. Roland promises to rescue Guy (p. 75). On the following morning Laban orders Sir Tamper to erect a gallows before the castle, where Floripas could see it. Guy is led bound. Roland calls his companions to arms. They rush forth (p. 76). Oliver cuts down Sir Tamper, Roland kills a king of India, takes his sword and horse, and gives them to Guy, having unbound him. They slay many Saracens, and put the rest to flight. Retiring towards the castle, they see Admiral Costroye, and the Soudan’s standard-bearer, escorting a great convoy, destined for the sultan, across a field near the high road (p. 77). Roland calls to them to share the provisions with them. Costroye refuses, and is slain by Roland. Oliver kills the standard-bearer, and the convoy is conveyed into the castle (p. 78). Floripas thanks Roland for bringing back Sir Guy, and proposes that he shall choose himself a mistress from amongst her maidens. But Roland refuses to take any that is not a Christian. The Soudan, on hearing such bad news, again defies his gods, and threatens to throw them into the flames (p. 79). But bishop Cramadas kneels before him and appeases him. The Soudan makes an offering of a thousand besants to his gods. When Richard arrived as far as Mantrible, he found the bridge barred by twenty-four chains, and Alagolofer standing before it. Determined not to leave his errand unperformed, he knelt down and commended himself to God. A hind appears (p. 80) and swims across the river; Richard follows her, and passing over in safety, hurries on to Charlemagne. Meanwhile Genelyn, the traitor, had advised Charles to retire to France, because the twelve peers were all slain. The king believed him, and marched homeward, lamenting for his peers. Richard overtakes him, and is recognized by Charles, who asks him about the others. ‹lxvi› Richard tells the king how they are besieged within the castle of Agremore, and are waiting for his assistance. Charles, vowing vengeance on Genelyn (p. 81), turned and marched to Agremore. Richard informed him of the giant who kept the bridge, and how he had passed the river by a miracle. He proposed a plan that twelve knights, disguised as merchants, with their arms hidden under their clothes, should pay the toll, and the bridge being let down, they should blow a horn as a signal for the others to approach. They start and arrive at Mantrible (p. 82). Alagolofer asks whither they are going. Richard says they are merchants on their way to the Soudan, and they are willing to pay the toll. Alagolofer refuses to let them pass, and tells them about the ten knights, who had passed there and done so much mischief to the Soudan; therefore he will arrest them all. Sir Focard draws his sword and smites at him, Richard blows his horn, and Charles advances (p. 83). Alagolofer fights them with a great oak club. Richard seizes a bar of brass and knocks him down. Four men get hold of him and throw him into the river. They loosened the chains; but the Saracens assembling on the walls of the city, many Christians were slain. Alagolofer’s wife, Barrock the giantess, comes on with her scythe and mows down all whom she meets. Charles dashes out her brains (p. 84), and with fifteen knights enters the outer gate of the town, thinking his army would follow him. But the gate was instantly closed upon him, and his men came too late. Charles was in great danger; but Genelyn, seeing him shut in, exclaimed that the king and the twelve peers were dead, and proposed to retire, as he wished to be king himself. They were going to return, but Ferumbras (p. 85) calls him a traitor; he rallies the French, and with his axe bursts open the gate. He chased the Saracens and rescued the king. Mantrible is taken with all its engines and treasures. Richard found two children of seven months old (p. 86), and four feet high. They were sons of Barrock, begotten by Astragot. Charles caused them to be baptized, and called the one Roland and the other Oliver. But they soon died for want of their mother’s milk. The king appoints Richard governor of the city, and hurries on to Agremore with his army and with Ferumbras (p. 87). Laban, being told by a spy ‹lxvii› that his city was taken and the bridge-ward killed, swears to avenge him. He calls a council, and charges his barons to take Charles alive that he might flay him. Charles approaches. Floripas first recognizes the banner of France and tells the others (p. 88). Roland and all his companions sally forth to meet Charlemagne. Laban draws up all his people in battle-order. The French make a great slaughter of the Saracens. Charles encounters the Soudan; he unhorses him, and would have cut off his head, but for Ferumbras, who requested that his father might be baptized. The Saracens, seeing Laban a prisoner, fly; but the Christians pursue them. Three hundred escaped to Belmarine. Charles leads Laban to Agremore. Floripas welcomes her father (p. 89), but he is enraged at seeing her. She then bids Charlemagne welcome, and presents the holy relics to him. Charles kisses them, and says a prayer; he then thanks Floripas for her assistance to his knights, and for having preserved the precious relics. He orders Turpin to prepare a vessel wherein to baptize the Soudan, and to wash off his sin in the water (p. 90). Turpin leads Laban to the font, but the Soudan strikes at him, spits on the vessel, utters invectives against all Christians, and curses Ferumbras. Charles commands Naymes to cut off his head. He is executed; his soul goes to hell, there to dance with devils. Floripas was baptized with all her maidens, and was wedded to Guy. Charles divided Spain between Guy and Ferumbras (p. 91), and charges Sir Bryer of Bretayne to take care of the relics, and to bring all his treasure to Paris. After taking leave of Guy and Floripas, Charles sails to Monpilier, where he thanks God for the victory (p. 92), and for the relics. He presents the cross to Paris, the crown to St. Denis, the three nails to Boulogne. Charles well remembered the treachery of Genelyn, and ordered him to be drawn and hanged at Montfaucon in Paris (p. 93).
From the unique MS. of the late Sir Thos. Phillipps.
Od in glorye of myghteste89 moost, | 1 | God has ordained all | |
That al thinge made in sapience | things wisely. | ||
By vertue of woorde and holy goost, | |||
Gyvinge to man grete excellence, | 4 | He has subjected the | |
And alle, þat is in erthe, wroght | earth to man, and man | ||
Subiecte to man and ma to the, | to God. | ||
That he shoulde witħ herte and thought | |||
To loue and serve, and noo but the: | 8 | The man who keeps His | |
For ȝyfe ma kepte thy commaundemente | commandments and loves | ||
In al thinge and loued the welle | Him well, will feel | ||
And hadde synnede in his entente, | His grace. But many | ||
Tha shulde he fully thy grace fele; | 12 | who offended Him have | |
But for the offences to God I-doon90 | felt His vengeance. I | ||
Many vengeaunces haue be-falle. | will tell you of one; | ||
Where-of I wole yo telle of oo, | it would take too long | ||
It were to mocħ to telle of alle. | 16 | to tell of all. Listen | |
While þat Rome was in excellence | to me, and ye shall | ||
Of alle Realmes in dignite, | hear how Rome, the | ||
And howe it felle for his offence, | former mistress of all | ||
Listinythe a while and ye shal see, | 20 | nations, came to fall | |
Howe it was wone and brente | by its sins, and was | ||
Of a Sowdo, that heathe was, | destroyed by a heathen | ||
And for synne howe it was shente; | Soudan. King Lewis has | ||
As Kinge Lowes witnessith þat cas, | 24 | borne witness to |
‹p002› LABAN, THE SOUDAN OF BABYLON, HEARS
As it is wryten in Romaunce | that story, which, | |
And founden in bokes of Antiquyte | written in Romance | |
At Seinte Denyse Abbey in Fraunc[e],91 | and found in very | |
There as Cronycles remembrede be, | 28 | old chronicles at |
Howe Laban, the kinge of hie degre, | St Denys in France, | |
And sy and Sowdo of hie Babilo, | relates how Laban, the | |
Conquerede grete parte of Christiante, | king of Babylon, who | |
That was born in Askalo. | 32 | was born at Ascalon, |
And in the Cite of Agremare92 | conquered a great part | |
Vppo the Rivere of Flagote | of Christendom. He was | |
At þat tyme he soiorned the† | holding his court in | |
Fulle roially, wel I wote, | 36 | the city of Agremore, |
With kinges xij and Admyralles xiiij, | on the river Flagot, | |
With many a Baro & Kniȝtis ful boold, | with 12 kings and 14 | |
That roialle were and semly to sene; | admirals, and many | |
Here worþynesse al may not be told. | 40 | worthy barons and |
Hit bifelle by-twyxte March and Maye, | [lf 1, bk] knights, | |
Whan kynde corage begynneth to pryke, | when, in the time | |
Wha ffritħ and felde wexen gaye, | between March and May, | |
And every wight desirith his like, | 44 | |
Wha lovers slepe withe opy yȝe, | ||
As Nightyngalis on grene tre, | ||
And sore desire þat thai cowde flye, | ||
That thay myghte withe here louere be: | 48 | |
This worthy Sowdo in this seso | he went to the chase | |
Shope him to grene woode to goo, | ||
To chase the Bore or the Veneso, | ||
The Wolfe, the Bere and the Bawson. | 52 | |
He roode tho vppo a fforeste stronde | in a wood near the sea. | |
With grete rowte and roialte, | ||
The fairest, þat was in alle þat londe, | ||
With Alauntes, Lymmeris and Racches free. | 56 | |
His huntes to chace he commaunde, | ||
Here Bugles boldely for to blowe, | ||
To fere the beestis in þat launde. |
‹p003› OF THE CAPTURE OF A SARACEN SHIP BY THE ROMANS.
The Sowdo woxe wery I-nowe; | 60 | Being weary with |
He rested him vndere an holme tre | hunting, he sat down | |
Sittynge vppo a grene sete | under a holm tree, and, | |
Seynge a Dromonde com seilyng in þe see | seeing a dromond | |
Anone he charged to beky him with honde | 64 | sailing on the sea, he charged |
To here of him tidinges newe. | one to enquire for news | |
The maister sende a man to londe, | concerning the ship. The | |
Of diuers langages was gode and trewe, | interpreter of the vessel being | |
And saide “lorde, this Dromonde93 | 68 | sent ashore, informed the |
Fro Babyloyne come is, | soudan, that this | |
That was worþe thousande poundis, | dromond, freighted at | |
As94 it mete with shrewes I-wis, | Babylon, with a cargo | |
Charged with perle and precious stones | 72 | of rich furs, spices, |
And riche pelure and spicerye, | oil, brass and pearls, | |
With oyle and bras qweynte for the nones | intended as a present | |
To presente yow, my lorde worthy. | to the soudan, had been | |
A drift of wedi vs droffe to Rome, | 76 | driven by stress of |
The Romaynes robbed vs anone; | weather to Rome, where | |
Of vs thai slowgh ful many one. | they had been robbed by | |
With sorwe and care we be bygone. | the Romans. | |
Whereof, lorde, remedye | 80 | [leaf 3] |
Ye ordeyne by youre Barons boolde, | Therefore he solicited | |
To wreke the of this vilane; | that the soudan would | |
Or certes oure blis is coolde.” | take revenge on those | |
The Soudon hirynge this tyþinge, | 84 | who had done such |
With egre chere he made a vowe | villainy to him. | |
To Mahounde and to Appolyne, | The soudan, hearing | |
That thai shulde by it dere I-nowe, | these tidings, made | |
Er that he wente fro theyme.95 | 88 | a vow to Mahound and |
“Where be ye, my kinges boolde, | to Apolyn, that they | |
My Barons and my Admyral? | should dearly pay for | |
Thes tidinges make myn herte coolde, | it. | |
But I be venged, dyen I shalle. | 92 | ‘Ferumbras, my son,’ he |
Sire Ferumbras, my sone so dere, | said, ‘and my daughter | |
Ye muste me comforte in this case; | Floripas, ye must |
‹p004› THE SOUDAN STARTS FROM AGREMORE
My ioye is alle in the nowe here | be my comfort in this | |
And in my Doghter Dame Florypas. | 96 | case. |
Sortybraunce, my Counselere, | Order Sortibrance, | |
Lete clepe him forthe to counsaile me, | my counsellor, to be | |
And Oliborne, my Chauncelere | called for, and my | |
And noble Clerke of hie degre, | 100 | chancellor Oliborn, |
And Espiarde, my messangere, | and Espiard my | |
To goon to Assye and to Aufrike, | messenger, that he | |
To kinges, princes fer and ne, | may go to Africa and | |
Barons, Admyralls and Dukes frike, | 104 | to Asia and to all |
Comaundinge hem vppo her legeaunce | the princes, who owe | |
To come in al hast vnto me, | me allegiance, and | |
Wel Armed with shelde and launse, | command them hastily to | |
To Egremoure þo riche Cite.” | 108 | assemble with shield |
In shorte tyme this message was wroghte | and lance at Agremore.’ | |
An hundred thouusande on a rowte | In a short time 100,000 | |
That robbery was righte dere boght, | men had assembled. | |
Was never none derrer withouten douȝte. | 112 | On the advice of Lukafer, |
The kinge of Baldas, sir Lukafe, | king of Baldas, | |
Of Aufryke lorde and governoure, | the soudan also | |
Spake to the Sowdo,that men myghte here, | brought together 700 sail | |
And saide “sir, for thyn honou, | 116 | and a dromond for himself, |
Do sende for shippes both fe and nere.” | for Ferumbras of | |
Carrikes, Galeis and shippes shene, | Alexandrie, for the | |
vij hundred were gadered al in fere | Asiatic king of | |
And a Dromonde for the Sowde kene. | 120 | [leaf 4] Chaunder and |
Sir Ferumbras of Alisaundre | for Floripas. There | |
In the Dromonde with him was, | were two masters in | |
Of Assy the kinge of Chaunde, | that vessel, and two | |
And his faire dogħter Floripas. | 124 | idols placed on the |
Two maistres were in the Dromounde, | main top, with round | |
Two goddes on hye sete thore | maces, therewith to | |
In the maister toppe, withe macis rounde, | menace the Christians. | |
To manace with the Criste lore. | 128 | The sails of red |
The sailes were of rede Sendelle, | sendal-silk were | |
Embrowdred witħ riche araye, |
‹p005› TO INVADE ROME WITH A GREAT ARMY.
With beestes and breddes every dele, | richly embroidered | |
That was right curious and gaye; | 132 | with figures of |
The Armes displaied of Laban | animals and birds. | |
Of Asure and foure lions of goolde. | Four golden lions, the | |
Of Babiloyne the riche Sowdo, | arms of the soudan of | |
Moost myghty man he was of moolde, | 136 | Babylon, were also |
He made a vowe to Termagaunte, | displayed thereon. | |
Whan Rome were distroied & hade myschaunce, | Laban made a vow to | |
He woolde turne ayen erraunte | Termagant, to destroy Rome, | |
And distroye Charles the kinge of Fraunce. | 140 | and after that Charlemagne. |
Fortħ thai sailed on the flode, | Having disembarked in | |
Tille thai come to the haven of Rome: | the haven of Rome, | |
The wynde hem served, it was ful goode. | they slew all | |
Ther londed many a grymlye gome. | 144 | Christians, and burned |
Thai brente and slowen, þat Cristen were, | towns, abbeys and | |
Tow, Abbey and holy chirche. | churches. | |
The hethen hade such power there, | The Pope of Rome, | |
That moche woo gan thai there wircħ. | 148 | hearing of the heathens |
Tidinggis came to Rome anone | laying waste the whole | |
Unto the Pope, that þt tyme was, | country, | |
That the heþen came to bren and slone. | ||
This was to hem a sory cas. | 152 | |
He lete cal his counsaile to-geder | assembled his council. | |
To wete, what was beste to do. | ||
Anone as thai were come þede, | ||
He asked of hem al ful sone: | 156 | |
“Lordinges, it is vnknowne96 to you, | ||
That this cursed hathen Sowdo | ||
Brennyth and stroyeth oure pepul nowe, | ||
Alive he leveth vnneth not one. | 160 | |
Seint Petir be oure governoure | [leaf 5] | |
And save this worthi Cite of Rome, | ||
And Seinte Poule be oure gydoure | ||
From this cursed hethe houne97!” | 164 | |
Ifreȝ he bispake him tha, | Jeffrez, a senator |
‹p006› SAVARIS LEADS THE CHRISTIAN TROOPS
Of Rome he was a Senatoure, | of Rome, advised that | |
And saide “senditħ some worthy man | worthy men should be | |
To Charles kinge of hye honoure. | 168 | sent to Charles of |
He wolde you helpe with al his mygħte, | Douce France to implore | |
That noble kinge of Dowse Fraunce.” | his assistance. | |
“Certes” quod Savaris “þat weren no rigħte, | But Duke Savariz, | |
It were right a foule myschaunce, | 172 | thinking this to be |
To sende to þat worthy kinge. | a wretched piece | |
We have oure hedes yet al hole, | of timidity, as they | |
Oure sheldes be not broke no-thinge, | had not tried | |
Hawberke, spere, ner poleyne, ner pole. | 176 | anything for themselves, |
Where-of shul we play to him, | ||
That no thinge yet have assaide? | ||
Mecħ uylanye we myght wynne, | ||
That for noght were so sone afrayed. | 180 | |
Ten thousande men delyuere me tyte | asked for 10,000 men | |
Tomorue next in-to the feelde, | to be put under his | |
And I shall prove with al my myghte | command. | |
To breke there bothe spere and shelde.” | 184 | |
Vnto the Senatours it semed welle, | ||
His counsaile goode and honurable. | ||
This worthi Duke was armed in stele | ||
In armes goode and profitable; | 188 | |
He bare a Chek of goulis clere, | ||
An Egle of goolde abrode displayed. | ||
With him many a bolde Bachelere | ||
Tho spake Savaryȝ witħ wordes on hye | 192 | The next morning the |
And saide “my felowes alle, | duke addressed his men, | |
This daie prove you me worthy, | ||
And faire you al shal befalle. | ||
Thenke yat Criste is more myghty | 196 | |
Than here fals goddis alle; | ||
And he shal geve vs the victorie, | ||
And foule shal hem this day bifalle.” | ||
Fortħ than rode þat faire Ooste | 200 | and directed them to |
With right goode chere and rando, | the soudan’s |
‹p007› AGAINST THE SARACENS AND CONQUERS THEM.
Tille than come ful nyȝe the cooste. | pavilion near the | |
Of the Sowdons Pavylo | shore. | |
Ferumbras was of hem ware | 204 | [leaf 6] Ferumbras, |
And sprange out as a sparkil of glede; | that doughty | |
Of Armes bright a sheelde he bare, | warrior, becoming | |
A Doughty ma he was of dede. | aware of them, led | |
xv thousande came oute there | 208 | 15,000 men against the |
With him at þat same tyde, | Romans. | |
Ayen the Romaynes for to were, | ||
Witħ bobaunce, booste and grete pride. | ||
The stoure was stronge, enduryn longe: | 212 | |
The Romaynes hade there the feelde; | ||
The Sarysyns thai slougħ amonge, | ||
Ten thousand and mo with spere and sheelde. | 10,000 and more of the | |
Sauariz was wise and ware | 216 | Saracens were slain, |
And drowe towards þat Citee. | and the Romans, though | |
His baner displaied witħ him he bare | victorious, were led | |
To releve with his meyne. | back to Rome by the | |
The Pope with his Senatours | 220 | cautious Savaris. |
Thanked god þat tyme of glorie, | The Pope thanked God | |
That gafe hem þat day grete honours, | for the victory. | |
Of hethen that dai to have the victorie. | Lukafer of Baldas | |
Lukafere, kinge of Baldas, | 224 | having scoured the |
The countrey hade serchid and sought, | country, | |
Ten thousande maidyns faire of face | brought 10,000 maidens | |
Vnto the Sowdan hath he broghte. | to the soudan, who | |
The Sowdo commanded hem anone, | 228 | ordered them to be |
That thai shulde al be slay. | slain, | |
Martires thai were euerycho, | saying, he would | |
And therof were thai al ful fayne. | not have his people | |
He saide “my peple nowe ne shalle | 232 | polluted by them, and |
With hem noughte defouled be, | he would destroy every | |
But I wole distroie ouer all | Christian seed. | |
The sede over alle Cristiante.” | Lukafer said to the | |
Tho spake lukefere the kinge, | 236 | soudan: |
That hethe hounde Baldas, |
‹p008› THE NEXT DAY LUKAFER ASSAULTS THE CITY,
And saide “Sir Sowda, graunte me one thinge, | “Grant me thy daughter | |
Thi doghter Dame Floripas. | and I will bring thee | |
The kinge of Fraunce I shal the bringe | 240 | Charlemagne and all his |
And the xij dosipers alle in fere.” | twelve peers.” | |
The Sowdan saide in þat tokenyn, | Laban assented; but | |
“I graunte the here, that is so dere.” | Floripas said, she | |
Tho sayde Floripe “sire, noo haste, | 244 | would only consent to |
He hath note done as he hath saide. | be his darling, | |
I trowe, he speketh these wordes in waste, | [leaf 7] | |
He wole make bute an easy brayde. | ||
Whan he bryngith home Charles the kinge | 248 | when he had taken |
And the xij dosipers alle, | Charles and the | |
I graunte to be his derlynge | douzepeers. | |
What so evere therof by-falle. | The next morning the | |
Than on the morowe the Sowda | 252 | soudan ordered Lukafer |
Callid to him Lukafe of Baldas, | to assault the City | |
To assaile the Cite anone: | with 30,000 men. | |
“And loke thou tary not in this cas! | ||
Thritty thousande of my menie, | 256 | |
Of Gallopes, Ethiopes and Aufricanes, | ||
Take hem to the walles witħ the. | ||
Betitħ dow wallis, towris and stones.” | ||
Lukafe blewe his clario | 260 | |
To Assemble the Sarasyns þat tide, | ||
Where-of thai knewe right welle the soune, | ||
Thai made hem redy for to ride, | ||
But whan thai come to the yate, | 264 | |
The Dikes were so develye depe, | The Saracens, finding | |
Thai helde hem selfe Chek-mate; | the ditches too deep, | |
Ouer cowde thai nothir goo nor crepe. | cannot pass, and are | |
Lukafe in al the haste | 268 | |
Turned to the Sowdan agay | obliged to return. | |
And saide “sir, it is alle in waste, | ||
We laboure nowe alle in vayne. | ||
To depe and brode the Dikes bene, | 272 | |
The Towres so stronge be witħ alle, |
‹p009› BUT THE HEATHENS ARE OBLIGED TO WITHDRAW.
That by Mahounde I can note see, | ||
How that we shulde wyne ther to the walle.” | ||
Who was woode but the Sowdo? | 276 | |
He reneyed his goddis alle. | ||
He clepede his Engynour sir mavone, | The soudan calls for | |
To counsaile he did him faste calle. | his engineer Mavon, | |
He tolde him the case of þat myschefe, | 280 | |
How it stode at that ilke tyde. | ||
Mavon Gafe him counsel in breefe | who advised him to fill | |
To fille the Dikes þat were depe.98 | the ditch | |
Every man to woode shal goo, | 284 | |
Fagotis to hewe and faste bynde, | with fagots. | |
And fille the Dikes faste anoo | ||
With alle, that we may ther fynde. | ||
“Gramercy, Mavo,” quod Laban tha, | 288 | Laban thanks his wise |
“Mahoundis benysone thou shalt haue, | engineer. | |
Of alle myn Ooste the wiseste man, | [leaf 8] | |
With counsaile men for to saue.” | ||
Alle this was done the seconde daye, | 292 | The following day, the |
Men myght go even to the walle; | ditch being filled with | |
On every party the ooste laye, | fagots, the city | |
Thai made assaite99 then generalle. | was assaulted from all | |
The Romaynes ronne to the toures, | 296 | quarters. The Romans |
Thai were in ful grete dowte; | ran to the towers, and | |
Thai hade many sharpe shoures, | a sharp conflict | |
Thai were assailed sore a-bowte. | ensued. | |
Wifis and maidyns stones thai bare | 300 | Women and maidens |
To the walles than ful faste, | carried stones which | |
Thai were in grete drede and care; | the | |
The men over the wallis did caste. | men threw over the | |
Thai slowen many a Sarasy, | 304 | walls. |
x thousande100 pepul of he and moo. | 10,000 Saracens were | |
The daie passed to the fyne, | slain and | |
The hethen withdrowe hem tho. | the heathens obliged to | |
Whan these tidinges came to laban, | 308 | withdraw. |
‹p010› LUKAFER ENTERS THE MAIN TOWER OF ROME.
His goddes he gan chide. | Laban chides his gods | |
He waxe both blake, pale and wan, | and nearly grows mad | |
He was nyȝe woode þat same tyde. | with vexation. But | |
Tho Lukafer comfortede him welle | 312 | Lukafer told him that, |
And saide “sir, be not dismayed, | having espied that | |
For I have aspied everydele, | Savaris would, the | |
Howe thai shalle alle be betrayede. | following day, come | |
Sauariz wole to morowe witħ us fighte, | 316 | out again to fight |
His baner knowe I ful welle; | with them, he would | |
I shal have an othere, I yo plighte, | have a banner made | |
Like to this every dele. | exactly like his, which | |
Whan he is moste besy in bataile, | 320 | when Savaris was much |
Than wole I with banere displaiede | engaged in the battle, | |
Ride in to Rome without faile, | he would unfold and | |
Thus shal thai al be betrayede.” | enter Rome. | |
The Sowda was glad of this tidinge, | 324 | |
Hopinge it shulde be so; | ||
And even as it was in purposynge, | And so it | |
Right so was it aftir I-do. | turned out; the Romans | |
Wenynge it hade be Sauarye, | 328 | mistaking him for |
Relevinge fro the hethen stou, | Savaris, returning from | |
Wenynge doth ofte harme withoute lye, | his sally, he entered | |
He entred to the maister Toure. | the main tower, | |
The firste warde thus thay wonne | 332 | [leaf 9] |
By this fals contrevede engyne. | ||
Thus was moche sorowe bygo, | ||
Thai slougħ all, that were ther-Inne. | and slew all therein. | |
Wha Sauariz saugħ this discomfitu | 336 | Savaris becoming aware |
Of the Romaynes in that tyme, | of the artifice of the | |
And howe harde tha was here aventu, | enemy, | |
Of sorowe þat myghte he ryme | ||
Of x thousande me lefte no moo | 340 | and seeing out of |
But sexty me and twelfe, | 10,000 Romans no more | |
And whan he sawe this myschief tho, | than seventy-two left, | |
He turned homewarde agayn him selue. | turned back, but found | |
By tha he founde the gate shite | 344 | the gate shut, |
‹p011› THE POPE DESPATCHES MESSENGERS TO CHARLEMAGNE.
With Sarisyns, that hade it wone; | ||
And Estragot with him he mette | ||
With bores hede, blake and donne. | ||
For as a bore an hede hadde | 348 | |
And a grete mace stronge as stele. | ||
He smote Sauaryz as he were madde, | and was slain by | |
That dede to grounde he felle. | Estragot, a black giant | |
This Astrogot of Ethiop, | 352 | of Ethiopia. |
He was a kinge of grete strengtħ; | ||
Ther was none suche in Europe | ||
So stronge and so longe in lengtħ. | ||
I trowe, he were a develes sone, | 356 | |
Of Belsabubbis lyne, | ||
For ever he was thereto I-wone, | ||
To do Criste men grete pyne. | ||
Whan tidinggis came to the [P]ope, | 360 | After the death of |
That Duke Sauaryz was dede slay, | Savaris, the Pope | |
Tha to woo turned alle his hope; | ||
He dide calle tha to counsaile | summoned his council | |
Alle the Senatouris of Rome, | 364 | again. |
What þinge þat myght hem most availe, | ||
And what were beste to done. | ||
Tho by-spake a worthy man of counsaile, | ||
An Erille of the Senatouris: | 368 | An earl of the |
“The best counsaile, þat I can | senatours suggested | |
the necessity of | ||
Sending vnto Charles the kinge101 | dispatching messengers | |
Certifiynge him by your myssangeris | to Charlemagne, | |
The myschief þat ye are Inne, | 372 | imploring him to come |
That he come with his Dosyperys | to their deliverance. | |
To reskue Cristiante fro this heþen.” | [leaf 10] | |
All thai assentede anone therto; | They all assented. | |
The lettres were made in haste. | 376 | Three messengers, |
Thre messageres we ordey102 therto, | with letters | |
That went forthe at the laste. | written in haste, |
‹p012› THE SARACENS THROW DOWN A BASTILE OF ROME.
At a posterne thai wente oute | left the city by a | |
Pryvely aboute mydnygħt, | 380 | postern at midnight, |
And passed through alle the route. | and passed the enemy’s | |
Of hem was war no wigħt. | camp without being |
|
And commaundid, þat every man | commanded every | |
Shulde withe Pikeys or witħ bille | man to throw pikes and | |
The Wallis over throwe, | 388 | bills over the walls, |
That he myght the Romaynes kille, | to kill the Romans. | |
Playnly on a rowe, | ||
By water he ordeynede the shippes goo, | He ordered the ships | |
The bootis bownden to the maste, | 392 | to go up the water, |
That thai myght fight with hem anoo, | with their boats bound | |
Honde of honde, þat was here caste. | to the mast, that they | |
To the Toure a bastile stode, | might fight in close | |
An engyne was I-throwe— | 396 | combat. |
That was to the Cite ful goode— | Near the tower there | |
And brake dow towres both hie and lowe. | stood a bastile which | |
Tho sorowede alle the Citesyns | formed a principal | |
And were ful hevy tha. | 400 | protection to the city. |
Tho wox prowde the Sarasyns, | It was laid low by | |
And than bispake sire laban | stones hurled from an | |
And saide “yolde youe here to me, | engine. | |
Ye may not longe endure, | 404 | Laban, growing proud, |
Or ellis shall ye al slay be, | summoned the Romans to | |
By mahounde I you ensure.” | surrender. | |
A Romayne drife a darte him to | Instead of an answer, a | |
And smote him on the breste plate, | 408 | Roman hurled a dart at |
Ne hadde his hawberke lasted tho, | his breast-plate, but | |
Mahounde had come to late. | his hauberk shielded | |
Tho was the Sowdo more þa wod, | him. | |
He cried to Ferumbras, | 412 | The soudan, more than |
“For Mahoundes loue, þat is so good, | mad, charged Ferumbras | |
Destroye vp bothe man and place. | to destroy them all, |
‹p013› ESTRAGOT IS CRUSHED BY A PORTCULLIS.
Spare no thinge that is alyve, | ||
Hows, Toure ner Walle, | 416 | [leaf 11] |
Beest, ner man, Childe nere Wife, | ||
Brenne, slo and distroye alle.” | ||
Tho Ferumbras ordeynede anone | ||
To bende the Engynes to the tow | 420 | |
And bete dow botħ Toure and stoo. | ||
He cleped fortħ Fortibraunce and Mavo | and enjoined | |
And saide “be youre Engynes goode? | Fortibrance and Mavon | |
Shewe forth here nowe your crafte | 424 | to direct their |
For Mahoundis love, þat gevith man foode, | engines against the | |
That ther be no Toure lafte.” | walls. | |
Tho the grete gloto Estagote103 | The great glutton | |
With his myghty mace sware | 428 | Estragot, with his |
On the Gatis of Rome he smote | heavy mace, | |
And brake hem alle on thre thare. | smote on the gates | |
In he entrid at the Gate | and brake them in | |
The Porte-Colis on him thai lete falle. | 432 | pieces. |
He wende, he hade come to late, | But as he was | |
It smote him through herte, lyuer and galle. | entering one of the | |
He lai cryande at the grounde | gates, they let the | |
Like a develle of Helle; | 436 | portcullis fall, |
Through the Cite wente the sowne, | which crushed him to | |
So lowde than gan he yelle. | the ground, | |
Gladde were al the Romaynes, | where he lay crying | |
That he was take in the trappe, | 440 | like a devil. |
And sorye were al the Sarsyns | The Romans were glad, | |
Of þat myschevos happe. | but the Saracens | |
Sory was the Soudo tha | grieved. | |
And Ferumbras and Lukafe. | 444 | They withdrew to |
Thai drowe hem tille her tentes tha, | their tents, leaving | |
Thai left him ligginge there. | behind the corpse of | |
Mahounde toke his soule to him | Estragot, whose soul | |
And broght it to his blis. | 448 | went up to Mahound. |
He loued him wel and al his kyn, |
‹p014› THE POPE ATTEMPTS A SALLY.
Of þat myghte he not mys. | ||
Anone the [P]ope dide somo alle; | The Pope called all | |
The peple of the Cite came, | 452 | his people to St. |
To Seinte Petris he dide hem calle, | Peter’s, | |
And thidere came every man. | ||
He saide on hie “my Children dere, | and proposed to them | |
Ye wote wel, howe it is; | 456 | |
Ayenst the Sarisyns, þat nowe be here, | ||
We mowe not longe endure I-wis. | ||
Thay brekene oure walles, oure Toures alle | [leaf 12] | |
With caste of his Engyne. | 460 | |
Therefore here amonge yo alle | ||
Ye shalle here counsaile myne. | ||
Thai bene withdrawe to here Oost,104 | ||
And on-armede thay ben alle. | 464 | |
Therfore, me thenketh, is beste | to attempt a sally | |
To-morowe erly on hem to falle. | with 20,000 men, to | |
We have xxxti thousande men; | attack the enemy | |
Twenty thousande shal go witħ me, | 468 | before day-break |
And in this Cite leve ten | within their camp, | |
To governe the comynalte.” | and to leave 10,000 | |
The Senatouris assentede sone | for the guard of the | |
And saide, beter myghte no man seyne. | 472 | city. The senators |
On the morowe this was it done105; | assented. | |
God bringe hem wele home agayne. | In the morning | |
The Pope did display than | the Pope displayed | |
The hie baner of Rome, | 476 | the banner of Rome, |
And he assoiled every ma | ||
Througħ gracious god in Dome. | ||
He praide of helpe and socou | and after a prayer | |
Seinte Petir and Poule also | 480 | for the preservation |
And oure lady, þat swete floure, | of the city, | |
To saue the Cite of Rome from woo. | they marched out. | |
Forth thai ride towarde the Oost. | But Ferumbras, going | |
Ferumbras romede a-boute; | 484 | his rounds, |
‹p015› FERUMBRAS DRAWS UP THE SARACEN TROOPS.
He saw the Romaynes come by the Cost,106 | discovered their | |
Thereof he hade grete dowte. | coming, | |
He blewe an horne, of bras it was; | sounded the alarm, | |
The Sarsyns be-go to wake. | 488 | |
“Arise vp” he saide in aras,107 | ||
“We bene elles alle I-take, | ||
And Armes anone, every wight, | ||
To horse with spere and shelde! | 492 | |
Ye may se here a ferefu sighte | ||
Of oure enemyes in the felde. | ||
Astopars,108 goo ye biforne vs, | and drew up his | |
For ye be men of myghte; | 496 | troops. |
Ethiopes, Assayneȝ and Askalous, | ||
Go nexte afore my sighte. | ||
My Fadir and I with Babyloynes, | ||
Ho109 shal kepe the rerewarde. | 500 | |
King Lukafe with Baldeseynes, | ||
To venge alle, shalle have the Fowarde.” | [leaf 13] | |
The Romaynes aspied, þat thai were ware | ||
Of here comynge tha, | 504 | |
And therfore hade thay moche care. | ||
Natheles on hem thai go— | ||
Seinte Petir be here socoure!— | ||
And laiden on side, bake and bo. | 508 | |
There bigan a sturdy shoure | There began a hard | |
Sire 110Ferumbras of Alisaundre oo,111 | struggle. | |
That bolde man was in dede, | ||
Vppon a steede Cassaundre gaye, | 512 | |
He roode in riche Weede. | ||
Sire Bryer of Poyle a Romayne to fraye | Ferumbras slew Sir | |
He bare through witħ a spere, | Bryer of Apulia | |
Dede to the grounde ther he la | 516 | |
Might he no more hem dere! |
‹p016› A GREAT MANY ARE SLAIN ON EITHER SIDE.
That sawe Huberte, a worthy man, | ||
Howe Briere was I-slay, | ||
Ferumbras to qwite tha | 520 | |
To him he rode ful eve. | ||
With a spere vppone his shelde þa | ||
Stifly ganne he strike; | ||
The shelde he brake I-myddis the feelde; | 524 | |
His Hawberke wolde not breke. | ||
Many goode strokes were delte. | ||
Ferumbras was a-greved tho, | ||
He smote with mayne and mygħte | 528 | and the worthy Hubert. |
The nekke asonder, the ventayle also, | ||
That dede he sate vprighte. | ||
There was bataile harde and stronge; | ||
Many a steede wente ther a-straye, | 532 | |
And leyen at the grounde I-stonge, | ||
That resyn never aftyr that day, | ||
IX thousand of the payens pride | 9000 pagans were | |
That day were slay, | 536 | killed, |
And viij thousande of the Romaynes side, | and 8000 Romans. | |
That in the feelde dede layne. | ||
Lukafere, þat paynym proude, | Lukafer destroyed | |
Slough Romaynes eyȝtene, | 540 | eighteen Romans, |
Of wer moche sorowe he coude, | he also slew Gyndard, | |
His strokes were over alle sene. | a senator of Rome, | |
Gyndarde, a Senatoure of Rome, | who had slain ten | |
Had slayne Sarsenys te, | 544 | [leaf 14] Saracens. |
Tille he met with the cursed gome, | ||
Lukifere slough him than. | ||
Tho come the Pope with grete aray, | Then came the Pope | |
His baner to-fore him wente. | 548 | with a great guard |
Ferumbras than ga to assaye, | and his banner before | |
If he myght that praye entente, | him. | |
Supposynge in this though[t]e, | Ferumbras, supposing | |
Ther was the souerayne; | 552 | him to be the |
He spared him therfore rigħt nogħt, | sovereign, |
‹p017› FERUMBRAS ENCOUNTERS THE POPE.
But bare him dow ther in þe play. | burst open the thick | |
Anoo he sterte on him all ane | crowd and threw him | |
His Ventayle for to onlace, | 556 | down to the ground. |
And saugh his crow newe shafe, | But seeing his | |
A-shamed thanne he was. | tonsure, he was | |
“Fye, preest, god gyfe the sorowe! | ashamed. | |
What doist thou armede in the feelde, | 560 | “Fie, priest,” |
That sholdest saie thi matyns on morwe, | he said, “what | |
What doist tho witħ spere and shelde? | doest thou in the | |
I hoped, tho hadiste be an Emperoure, | battle-field? | |
Or a Cheftayne of this Ooste here, | 564 | |
Or some worthy conqueroure. | ||
Go home and kepe thy Qwe! | ||
Shame it were to me certayne | It would be a shame | |
To sle the in this bataile, | 568 | for me to slay thee. |
Therfore turne the home agay!” | Go home and think of | |
The Pope was gladde þer-of certayne,112 | thy choir-service!” | |
He wente home to Rome that nyght | The Pope retired with | |
Witħ Five thousande and no more, | 572 | 5000 men, |
XV thousande lefte in the feelde aplight, | 15,000 being killed. | |
Full grete sorowe was therfore. |
|
Howe the Romaynes were slayne, | messenger the great | |
And howe the Contrey brente was | disaster which had | |
Vnto the Gate of Rome, | 580 | befallen the Romans, |
And howe the people song ‘alas,’ | ||
Tille socoure from him come. | ||
“Who” quod Charles, that worthy kinge, | said, he would not | |
“The Sowdo and Ferumbras? | 584 | desist until he had |
I nyl lette for no thinge, | [leaf 15] chased the | |
Till I him oute of Cristendome chace. | soudan and Ferumbras | |
Therefore Gy of Burgoy, | out of Christendom. | |
Mynne owen nevewe so trewe, | 588 |
‹p018› THE SARACENS AGAIN ATTACK THE CITY.
Take a thausande pounde of Frankis fyne, | He gave 1000 pounds | |
To wage wytħ the pepul newe. | of francs to his | |
Take this with the nowe at this tyme, | nephew Guy of | |
And more I wole sende the, | 592 | Burgundy, |
Loke that thou spare no hors ne shelde, | and sent him off with | |
But þat he dede be; | orders to advance | |
And faste hye the thyderwarde, | against the soudan by | |
For I drede thay haue grete nede, | 596 | forced marches. |
And I shalle come aftirwarde | Himself would follow | |
As faste, as I may me spede.” | as soon as possible. |
|
To Distroye Rome Citee. | ||
“Sir Lukafe, thou madiste thi boost | Laban reminded | |
To conque the Romaynes | 604 | Lukafer of his |
And to bringe me the Ooste | vaunting promise to | |
Of the xij peris and Charlemayne. | bring him Charlemagne | |
Vppo a condicio I graunte the | and his douzepeers, | |
My doghter, dere Dame Floripas. | 608 | in return for his |
Wherefore, I aske nowe of the | daughter Floripas. | |
To holde covenaunte in this cas.” | ||
“That I saide” quod Lucafere, | Lukafer said, he | |
“To Mahounde I make a vowe | 612 | would do all he had |
To done al þat I hight the the, | promised. | |
Ye and more than113 for Florip love.” | ||
He ordeyned assaute anone in haste | With 10,000 men he | |
With x thousande men and moo; | 616 | attacked the city on |
And Ferumbras at that oþer side faste | one side, the other | |
Assailed hem with grete woo. | being assaulted by | |
The saute endured al þat daye | Ferumbras. The combat | |
From morowe, tille it was nyght, | 620 | continues as long as |
To throwe and shete by euery waye, | daylight lasts. At | |
While that hem endured the light. | night they retired to | |
Tho wente thai home to thai tentys, | their tents. |
‹p019› THEY ENTER ROME BY TREASON.
Tille it were on the morowe. | 624 | Isres, who possessed |
Isres in his fals ententes | by inheritance | |
Purposed treso and sorowe. | the guard of the | |
He was chief Porter of the Tow, | [leaf 16] principal | |
By heritage and fee so he shulde be. | 628 | gate, planned treason. |
He wente to the Sowda, | He repaired to the | |
For the riche Cite betraye woolde he, | soudan and offered to | |
And saide “lorde, gife me grace | betray the city on | |
For my goodes and for me, | 632 | condition that his |
And I wole delyuer the this place | life and property | |
To haue and holde for ever in fee. | should be spared. | |
The keyes of this riche Cite | ||
I haue in my bandon.” | 636 | |
“That graunte I” quod Laban “the | The soudan promised | |
To be free withoute raunso.” | it. | |
Ferumbras made him yare, | Ferumbras with 20,000 | |
With xxti thousand me and moo, | 640 | men went with Isres. |
With this Isres for to fare, | ||
And to wynne the Cite soo. | ||
As sone as he entred was | On entering the gate, | |
The chief Gate of alle, | 644 | |
And alle his men in aras,114 | he caused the | |
He lete the Portcolys falle. | traitor’s head to be | |
He smote of the traitourus hede | struck off by the | |
And saide “god gife him care! | 648 | portcullis, and |
Shal he never more ete brede, | ||
All traitours evel mot115 thai fare! | ||
If he myght leve and reigne here, | ||
He wolde betraye me; | 652 | |
For go he west, soutħ or Nortħ, | ||
Traitour shalle he never be.” | to be carried on the | |
He dide lete bere his hede on a spere | point of a spear | |
Througħ-oute this faire Citee. | 656 | through the city. |
‘Treson, treso’ thai cried there, | “Treason,” cried the | |
Pite it was to here and see. | people within, |
‹p020› FERUMBRAS TAKES THE RELICS TO AGREMORE.
The people fled by every waye, | ||
Thai durst no-where a-bide. | 660 | |
The hye wey ful of dede men laye, | and all streets were | |
And eke by every lanys side. | soon covered with | |
Ferumbras to Seinte Petris wente, | dead men. Ferumbras | |
And alle the Relekes he seased anoo, | 664 | went to St. Peter’s, |
The Crosse, the Crow, the Nailes bente; | seized the relics, | |
He toke hem with him everychone. | the cross, the crown | |
He dide dispoile al the Cite | and the nails, | |
Both of tresoure and of goolde, | 668 | |
And after that brente he | [leaf 17] burned | |
Alle þat ever myght be toolde. | the whole city, and | |
And alle the tresoure witħ hem þai bare | carried away all the | |
To the Cite of Egremou. | 672 | treasures and the |
Laban the Sowdo soiourned there116 | gold to Agremore, | |
Thre monþes and thre dayes more | where the soudan went | |
In myrtħ and Ioye and grete solas. | to stay. Three months | |
And to his goddes offrynge he made, | 676 | and three days they |
He and his sone Sir Ferumbras | spent there in great | |
Here goddis of golde dide fade, | festivities, making | |
Thai brente Frankesense, | offerings to their | |
That smoked vp so stronge, | 680 | gods, and burning |
The Fume in her presence, | frankincense in their | |
It lasted alle alonge. | honour. | |
Thai blewe hornes of bras, | ||
Thai dronke beestes bloode. | 684 | They drank the blood |
Milke and hony ther was, | of beasts and milk, | |
That was roial and goode. | and ate honey and | |
Serpentes in Oyle were fryed | snakes fried in oil. | |
To serve þe Sowdo with alle, | 688 | |
“Antrarian Antrarian” thai lowde cryed | ||
That signyfied ‘Ioye generalle.’ | ||
Thus thai lived in Ioye and blis | ||
Two monþes or thre. | 692 | |
Lete we now be alle this, |
‹p021› GUY AND CHARLEMAGNE APPROACH.
And of Gye nowe speke we. |
|
That he myght se the cooste, | near Rome, finding | |
Alle on a flame þat Cite was, | the whole city in | |
That thre myle al abowte, | 700 | flames, |
Ther durst no ma, þat ther was, | ||
Come nyȝe the Cite for grete dowte. | ||
That was a sory Cite than, | ||
Sir Gye was in grete care, | 704 | he grieved much |
Ther was nowhere a soryer ma, | ||
For sorowe he sighed ful sare, | ||
And saide “welallas”117 the while | ||
“For we come ar to late, | 708 | that he had arrived |
For by some treson or some gyle | too late. | |
Thai entred in at some Gate. | ||
There is no more but for to abyde, | He resolved there to | |
Tille Charles come, the kinge, | 712 | wait for Charlemagne |
In this mede Vnder grene wode side, | [leaf 18] | |
To telle him of this tithinge, | and then to tell him, | |
Howe Laban hath the Cite brente | how Laban had burnt | |
And bore the Religes118 a-waye, | 716 | the city, and had |
And howe he hath hem to Spayne sente | sent the relics to | |
With Shippes of grete aray, | Agremore, | |
To Egremou his chief Cite, | his principal town in | |
Ther to live and ende; | 720 | Spain. |
And manassitħ Charles and his baronye. | ||
God gife hem evelle ende!” | ||
Kinge Charles he forgate nought | King Charles advanced | |
To come to reskowe Rome, | 724 | to rescue Rome with |
Alle his Doȝypers were I-sought, | his douzepeers | |
Fulle sone to him thay come. | ||
Thre hundred thousande of Sowdeoures | and 300,000 soldiers. |
‹p022› CHARLES HEARS OF THE MISCHIEF DONE BY THE SARACENS.
Kinge Charles with him dide lede, | 728 | |
They were doughty in all stourys | ||
And worthy men of dede. | ||
Sir Roulande þat worthy knighte, | Roland led the | |
He ladde the Fowarde, | 732 | vanguard, |
And Sir Olyue, that was so wighte, | Oliver the rear, | |
Gouerned the Rerewarde. | ||
The Kinge himselfe and his Baronye, | the king was | |
With Dukes And Erilles roialle, | 736 | |
Gouerned alle the medil partye. | with the main body. | |
By commaundemente generall | ||
He ordeynede grete plente | The provisions | |
Of Flessh and Fissh, brede and wyne, | 740 | |
In shippes to saile by the see, | were conveyed by sea. | |
To serven him ful wel and fyne. | ||
Sir Gye aspied his comynge, | Guy seeing them come, | |
He knewe the baner of Fraunce, | 744 | went to |
He wente anoo ayen the kinge | meet the king, and | |
And tolde him of þat myschaunce, | told him the mischief | |
Howe that the cursed Sowda | done by the soudan, | |
Hath brent Rome and bore the Relekis awaye, | 748 | |
And how he hath slay alle and some, | ||
That he hatħ founde of Criste faye. | ||
And more-over he made his a-vowe, | who moreover had made | |
To seke kinge Charles in Fraunce | 752 | a vow to seek Charles |
And do him wo ther I-nowe. | in France in order | |
“God gif him moch myschaunce!”— | to afflict him with | |
“A” quo Charles “þat neditħ noght, | grief. [leaf 19] “He | |
He shal fynde me nere. | 756 | will find me near,” |
By god, þat dere me bogħt, | said Charles, “and | |
He shal by it ful dere. | shall dearly pay for | |
I shalle him never leve I-wis | it. | |
Withinne walle ner witħoute, | 760 | |
I swere by god and seinte Denys, | ||
Tille I have sought him oute; | Unless he consents to | |
And but if he will Baptised be | be baptized, |
‹p023› HE GOES OVER TO SPAIN.
And lefe his fals laye, | 764 | |
Babyloyne shal he never see | he never shall see | |
For alle his grete aray.” | Babylon again.” They | |
Anoon to shippe every ma | all took ship without | |
With vitaile and with store, | 768 | delay. |
Euen towarde the proud Sawda | ||
With-oute any more. | ||
Wynde him blewe ful fayre and goode | ||
Into the Ryver of Gaȝe, | 772 | Propitious winds |
Even over the salte flode | drove them into the | |
And ouer the profounde rase. | river Gase, where | |
XXX legeeȝ from Egremou | they landed, 30 miles | |
By londe for south it is, | 776 | from Agremore, |
And ther withoute any more | ||
To londe thai wente I-wis, | ||
And brente and sloughe al þat thai fonde, | and laid waste the | |
And stroyed both Toure and tow. | 780 | country. |
Thai lefte no thinge on grounde, | ||
That thai ne bete it dow. | ||
Tithinggis were tolde to Laban, | Laban, hearing this | |
Howe Charles was I-come | 784 | news, |
And slough bouth childe, wyfe, man | ||
And brente and stroyed alle and some | ||
With thre hundred thousand of Bacheleris, | ||
That were both stoute and gaye, | 788 | |
And with him al his Dosyperis, | ||
Pepul of grete araye. | ||
“And but ye ordeyne remedy, | ||
He wole you brenne and sloo, | 792 | |
Youe and youre riche Baronye, | ||
He wole leve a-life neuere oo.” | ||
Whan Laban herde these tidyngys, | ||
His herte woxe alle coolde | 796 | |
And saide “this is a wonder thinge! | [leaf 20] | |
Howe durste he be so boolde? | was astonished at | |
Litill kennyth he what I may doo, | Charles’s presumption. |
‹p024› A GREAT BATTLE ENSUES.
He dredith me litil nowe. | 800 | |
But certes he shalle, e he goo, | ||
To Mahounde I make a vowe. | ||
Sir Lucafe and Ferumbras | He assembled all his | |
To him dide he calle | 804 | barons, |
And Mavo and Sortebras | ||
And his Barons alle. | ||
I charge you vppo youre legeaunce, | ||
That ye bringe me that gloton, | 808 | and charged them to |
That clepeth himselfe kinge of Fraunce, | bring him alive that | |
Hidere to my Pavilo. | glutton that called | |
Kepe him a-live, the remenaunte sle | himself king of | |
The xij Peris ychoo! | 812 | France, and to slay |
I shalle tech him curtesye, | the remnant. | |
I swere by god Mahounde.” | ||
Ferumbras anoo than | Ferumbras went forth | |
Arrayed him for to ride | 816 | with many Saracens. |
With proude Sarasyns many a man, | ||
That boldely durst a-bide. | ||
Rowlande met with Ferumbras | He meets with Roland. | |
And gafe him such a stroke | 820 | |
That al astonyed þerof he was, | ||
It made him lowe to stoupe. | ||
Ferombras smote him agayne | They deal each other | |
With myghte and mayn, with ire | 824 | heavy strokes. |
That he stenyed alle his brayne, | ||
Him thought, his eye were alle on fyre. | ||
With Lucafe Olive mette, | Oliver cuts off a | |
And hit him on the sheelde | 828 | quarter of Lukafer’s |
A stroke, that was right wel sette; | shield. | |
A quarter flye in the feelde. | ||
Thus thai hurteled to-gedere | The combat lasted the | |
Alle the lefe longe daye, | 832 | whole day. |
Nowe hider and nowe theder; | ||
Mony an hors wente ther astraye. | Well fought the | |
The Dosyperis thay foughten wele, | twelve peers. |
‹p025› CHARLES ENCOUNTERS FERUMBRAS AND LUKAFER.
Duke Neymys and Oge, | 836 | |
With goode swerdes of fyne stele | ||
And so dide Gye and Syr Brye. | ||
Ferumbras was euer a-bowte | [leaf 21] | |
To fyghte witħ Olyvere, | 840 | Ferumbras charges |
And Olyue with-oute dowte | Oliver. | |
Leyde on with goode chere. | ||
Kinge Charles saugh Ferumbras, | King Charles, seeing | |
To him fast he rode | 844 | this, rides on to |
And it on the helme witħ his mace, | Ferumbras, | |
That stroke sadlye abode. | and strikes his helm | |
Ferumbras was woode for woo, | with his heavy mace. | |
He myght for prees come him to | 848 | Ferumbras cannot |
For no worldis thinge, that myght be tho. | approach him on | |
Kinge Charles anoon119 Ioye oute-drowe, | account of the crowd. | |
And with his owen honde | Charlemagne with his | |
XXXti Sarseynys ther he slowe, | 852 | sword Mounjoy slew 30 |
That laie dede vppone the sonde; | Saracens. | |
Many of hem therfore made joy Inowe. | ||
Sir Lucafere of Baldas, | Lukafer of Baldas, | |
He presed to Charles sone, | 856 | encountering Charles, |
And saide “Sir, with harde grace, | ||
What hastowe here to done? | ||
I behight Laban to bringe the to him | told him that he had | |
And the xij peris alle; | 860 | promised the soudan |
Now shaltowe come from al thy kyn | to bring him Charles | |
Into the Sowdans halle. | and the douzepeers. | |
Yelde the to me” he saide, | ||
“Thy life shalle I safe.” | 864 | |
A stroke on him than Charles layde; | Charles strikes him | |
He made the Paynym to rafe. | on his helmet, | |
He smote him on the helme | ||
With mown-Ioye, his gode bronde. | 868 | |
Ne hadde he be reskued than, | ||
He hade slayn him with his honde. |
‹p026› THE SARACENS QUIT THE FIELD.
Than came Baldeȝynȝ with thronge | but Lukafer is | |
To reskue there here lorde, | 872 | rescued by a great |
And nubens with hem amonge | throng. Roland, | |
And Turkes by one accorde. | drawing Durendale, | |
Tho Roulande Durnedale oute-drowe | cleared a space | |
And made Romme120 abowte. | 876 | around him and |
XL of hem ther he slowe, | ||
Tho were thai in grete dowte. | ||
Roulande as fiers as a lio | ||
With Durnedale121 tho dinge | 880 | hammered the heads of |
Vppon the Sarsyns crowne, | the Saracens. | |
As harde as he myght flynge. | [leaf 22] | |
Duke Neymys and Sir Olyue, | So do the other peers, | |
Gy and Alloreynes of Loreyne, | 884 | |
And alle the noble xij Peris, | ||
Oge and Brye of Brytayne, | ||
Thai foughten as feythfully in þat fight, | ||
The feelde ful of dede men laye. | 888 | |
XXXti thousande, I you plight, | and 30,000 Saracens | |
Of Sarsenys ther were slay. | were slain. | |
Al thinge moste haue a ende, | ||
The nyghte come on ful sone, | 892 | At night the Pagans |
Every wighte retourned to wende; | quit the field. | |
Ferumbras to his men gan gone | ||
And saide “oure hornes blowe we, | ||
This day haue we a ful ille afraye, | 896 | |
To saie the south and not to lye, | ||
Oure goddis holpe vs not to daye, | ||
What devel þat ever he eilith. | ||
This bataile was so sharpe in faye, | 900 | |
That many a man it wailyth. | ||
Shalle I never in herte be glade to daye, | Ferumbras vows, never | |
Till I may preve my myghte | to desist | |
With Roulande, that proude ladde, | 904 | |
Or with Olyue, that is so lighte, |
‹p027› CHARLES PRAISES THE OLD KNIGHTS.
That evel hath vs ladde; | ||
And in Paris be crowned kinge | unless he be crowned | |
In despite of hem alle, | 908 | king at Paris. |
I wole leve for no thinge | ||
What so evere byfalle.” | ||
Kinge Charles with grete honou | Charles went to his | |
Wente to his Pavilo; | 912 | pavilion and |
Of the treyumple he bare the flou | ||
In dispite of Mahounde. | ||
Almyghty God and Seynte Denyse | thanked God | |
He thanked ful ofte sithe | 916 | |
And oure lady Marie of Paris, | and St. Mary of | |
That made hem gladde and blitħ. | France. | |
He recomendide the olde Knightes, | He praised the elder | |
That þat daye hade the victorye, | 920 | knights for having |
And charged the yonge with al her myghtes | won the victory and | |
To haue hem in memorye; | exhorted the young | |
For worthynesse wole not be hadde, | ones | |
But it be ofte sougħte, | 924 | [leaf 23] |
Ner knigħthode wole not ben hadde, | ||
Tille it be dere boghte. | ||
“Therfore ye knightes, yonge of age, | ||
Of oolde ye may now lere, | 928 | |
Howe ye shalle both hurle and rage | ||
In felde with sheelde and spere. | ||
And take ensample of the xij Peris, | to take an example by | |
Howe thai have proved her myght, | 932 | them. |
And howe thai were both wight and fiers | ||
To wynnen honourys in righte. | ||
These hethen houndes we shal a-tame | ||
By God in magiste, | 936 | They make merry and |
Let us make myrtħ in goddis name | go to supper. | |
And to souper nowe goo we.” | Prayer addressed |
|
‹p028› SPRING IS THE TIME OF LOVE.
And rulist alle that alone, | ||
To whom I profre precious present, | ||
To the makande my moone | 944 | |
Witħ herte, body and alle myn entente, | ||
A crow of precious stoones, | ||
And howe to the I gyfe | ||
Withouten fraude or engyne, | 948 | |
Vppo thy day to make offerynge, | ||
And so shal I ever, while þat I live; | ||
By righte þat longith to my laye, | ||
In worshipe of thy reverence | 952 | |
On thyn owen Tewesdaye | ||
With myr, aloes and Frankensense, | ||
Vppo condicio that thou me graunte, | to grant the | |
The victorye of Crysty Dogges, | 956 | Mahometans the |
And that I may some122 hem adaunte | victory over the | |
And sle hem dow as hogges, | Christians. | |
That have done me distruccio | ||
And grete disherytaunce | 960 | |
And eke slayn my men with wronge. | ||
Mahounde gyfe hem myschaunce!” |
|
Whan floures spryngy and bygynne, | [leaf 24] | |
And alle the floures in the fritħ | ||
Freshly shews here kynde, | 968 | |
Than it is semely therwytħ, | man ought to show his | |
That manhode be in mynde; | manhood | |
For corage wole a man to kitħ, | ||
If he of menske haue mynde, | 972 | |
And of loue to lysty and lithe, | and to think of love. | |
And to seke honu for þat ende. | For none can be a | |
For he was neuere gode werryou, | good warrior, unless | |
That cowde not loue a-ryght; | 976 | he knows how to love. |
‹p029› THE SOUDAN RALLIES HIS TROOPS.
For loue hath made many a conquerou | ||
And many a worthy knighte. | ||
This worthy Sowdan, though he heþen we, | The soudan was a | |
He was a worthy conquerou; | 980 | great conqueror; |
Many a contrey with shelde and spere | ||
He conquerede wyth grete honoure. | ||
And his worthy sone Ferumbras, | Ferumbras and | |
That kinge was of Alisaund, | 984 | |
And Lucafe of Baldas, | Lukafer wrought | |
That cruel kinge of Cassaund, | ||
That wroughten wonders with here honde | wonders with their | |
With myghte and mayne for to fyghte, | 988 | hands. |
And over-ride mony a manly londe, | ||
As men of Armes hardy and wighte. | ||
The Sowdan seyinge this myschief, | ||
How Charles hade him a-greved, | 992 | |
That grevaunce was him no thinge lese,123 | ||
He was ful sore ameved. | ||
He sente oute his bassatoures | The soudan sent for | |
To Realmes, provynces fer and ne, | 996 | his vassals, |
To Townes, Citeis, Castels and Tours, | ||
To come to him the he were, | ||
To Inde Maior and to Assye, | ||
To Ascoloyne, Venys, Frige and Ethiope, | 1000 | |
To Nubye, Turkye and Barbarye, | ||
To Macedoine, Bulga and to Europe. | ||
Alle these people was gadred to Agremore, | and assembled more | |
Thre hundred thousand of Sarsyns felle, | 1004 | than 300,000 Saracens |
Some bloo, some yolowe, some blake as more, | at Agremore. | |
Some horible and stronge as devel of helle. | ||
He made hem drinke Wilde beestes bloode, | [leaf 25] | |
Of Tigre, Antilope and of Camalyo, | 1008 | |
As is here vse to egre here mode, | ||
Whan þai in werre to battayle goon. | ||
He saide to hem “my frendes de, | He addressed them in | |
As my trust is alle in you, | 1012 | order |
‹p030› THE SARACENS SACRIFICE TO THEIR GODS.
On these Frenche dogges, that bene here, | to increase their | |
Ye moste avenge me nowe. | ardour, | |
Thai have done me vilanye, | ||
Mikille of my people have thay slay. | 1016 | |
And yet more-over thay manace me | ||
And drive me to my contrey agayn; | ||
Wherefore I wole at the bygynnynge | ordered a solemn | |
To Mahounde and to my goddis alle | 1020 | sacrifice to his gods, |
Make a solempne offerynge; | ||
The better shall it vs byfalle. | ||
The laste tyme thai were wrothe, | ||
We hade not done oure dute. | 1024 | |
Therefore to saye the southe” . . . . | ||
There were many hornys blowe, | ||
The preestes sende thikke I-nowe | ||
Goolde, and silver thikke thai throwe, | 1028 | |
With noyse and crye thai beestes slowe, | ||
And thought to spede wel I-nowe; | ||
And every man his vowe he made | ||
To venge the Sowda of his tene. | 1032 | |
Here goddis of golde thai wex alle fade, | ||
The smoke so grete was hem bitwene. | ||
Whan alle was done, the Sowdan than | ||
Charged Ferumbras redy to be | 1036 | and charged Ferumbras |
On the morowe, ere day began, | ||
To ride oute of þat Cite | ||
With xxxti thousande of Assiens, | to march with 30,000 | |
Frigys, Paens and Ascoloynes, | 1040 | of his people |
Turkis, Indeis and Venysyens, | ||
Barbarens, Ethiopes and Macidoynes, | ||
“Bringe him to me, that proude kinge; | against the Christian | |
I shal him teche curtesye, | 1044 | King, whom he wished |
Loke that thou leve for nothinge | to teach courtesy, | |
To sle alle his other mayne, | [leaf 26] and to slay | |
Safe Rouland and Olyuere, | all his men except | |
That bene of grete renowne, | 1048 | Roland and Oliver, |
‹p031› FERUMBRAS CHALLENGES 6 CHRISTIAN KNIGHTS TO SINGLE COMBAT.
If thai wole reneye he goddis the | if they would | |
And leven on myghty Mahounde.” | renounce their |
|
By syde in a grene mede. | Charles’s camp, he | |
In a woode he buskede his men | ordered them to | |
Prively that same tyde, | 1056 | halt in a wood, and |
And with his felowes noon but ten | advanced with only | |
To kinge Charles he gan ride | ten of his men to the | |
And said “si kinge, that Arte so kene, | camp of Charlemagne, | |
Upon trwes I come to speke with the, | 1060 | |
If thou be curteis, as I wene, | ||
Thou wolte graunte a bone to me, | ||
That I migħte fight vppo this grene, | and offered him to | |
With Rouland, Olyvere and Gye, | 1064 | fight at once against |
Duke Neymes and Oge I mene, | Roland, Oliver, Guy, | |
Ye and Duke Richarde of Normandye, | Duke Naymes, Ogier | |
With al sex attones to fight. | the Dane, and Richard | |
My body I prof here to the | 1068 | of Normandy. |
And requyre the, kinge, tho do me right, | ||
As thou art gentille Lord and fre; | ||
And if I may conquere hem in fere, | If he should conquer | |
To lede them home to my Faderis halle; | 1072 | them, he would lead |
And if thai me, I graunte the here, | them away to his | |
To be thy man, body and alle.” | father’s hall; if he | |
The kinge Answered with wordis mylde | should be conquered, | |
And saide “felowe, þat neditħ nought, | 1076 | he would be his man. |
I shalle fynde of my a Childe, | ||
That shal the fynde that thou hast sought.” | ||
The kinge lete calle Sir Roulande | The king sent for | |
And saide “thou most with this man figħt, | 1080 | Roland and ordered |
To take this bataile here on honde, | him to undertake | |
Ther-to God gyfe the grace and myghte!” | the combat. Roland | |
Roulande answered with woordis boolde | refuses, | |
And saide “Sir, have me excuse!” | 1084 |
‹p032› ROLAND REFUSES TO UNDERTAKE THE COMBAT.
He saide, certeynly he ne wolde; | ||
The bataile vttirly he refused. | because Charles had | |
“The laste day ye preised faste | praised the old | |
The oolde knightes of he worthynes. | 1088 | knights. [leaf 27] |
Let hem goon fortħ, I haue no haste, | “May they show their | |
Thai may goo shewen he prowes.” | valour now.” Charles, | |
For that worde the kinge was wrothe | vexed, smites Roland | |
And smote him on the mouthe o hye, | 1092 | on the mouth, so that |
The bloode at his nose oute-goth, | the blood springs | |
And saide “traitour, thou shalte a-bye.” | from his nose, and he | |
“A-bye” quod Roulande “wole I noughte, | calls him a traitor. | |
And traitour was I never none, | 1096 | |
By þat lord, þat me dere hath bought!” | ||
And braide oute Durnedale þe anone. | Roland draws his | |
He wolde haue smyte the kinge the, | sword, but the other | |
Ne hadde the barons ronne bytwene; | 1100 | barons separate them |
The kinge with-drowe him for fe | and try to conciliate | |
And passed home as it myght beste bene. | them. | |
The Barons made hem at one | ||
With grete praye and instaunce, | 1104 | |
As every wrath moste over-gone, | Meanwhile Oliver, | |
Of the more myschiefe to make voydaunce. | who, being sorely | |
Olyuere herde telle of this, | wounded, kept his | |
That in his bedde laye seke sore. | 1108 | bed, on hearing of |
He armede him ful sone I-wisse, | this dispute, had | |
And to the kinge he wente withoute more | armed himself and | |
And saide “Sir Kinge, a bone graunte me | went to Charles. He | |
For alle the servyse, that I haue done, | 1112 | reminds him of his |
To fight with þat kinge so free | long services, and | |
To morue day, ere it be none.” | demands the battle. | |
Charles answered to Olyue: | Charles remonstrates | |
“Thou arte seke and woundede sore, | 1116 | with him. |
And thou also my cosy dere, | ||
Therfore speke thereof no more.”— | ||
“Sir Kinge” he saide “I am alle hoole, | But Oliver insists. | |
I aske you this bone in goddis name.” | 1120 |
‹p033› OLIVER GOES TO FIGHT WITH FERUMBRAS.
“Certes” he saide “I holde the a fole, | ||
But I praye, god sheelde the fro shame.” | Oliver rides to the | |
Forth he rideth in that Forest, | forest, and finds | |
Tille he gan Ferumbras see, | 1124 | Ferumbras alighted |
Where he was ligħt and toke his rest, | under a tree, to | |
His stede renewed til a grene tre. | a branch of which | |
“Sir” he saide “reste tho wele! | his steed was tied. | |
Kinge Charles sente me hidu. | 1128 | “Arise,” he said, |
If thou be curteys knighte and lele, | “I am come to fight | |
Rise vp and let vs fight to-geder.” | with thee.” [leaf 28] | |
Ferumbras sate stille and lough, | Ferumbras, without | |
Him liste not to rise oute of the place. | 1132 | moving, demands his |
“My felowe” quod he “what arte thou? | name. | |
Telle me thy name for goddis grace.” | ||
“Sir” he saide “Generyse, | “I am Generys,” says | |
A yonge knighte late dobbet newe.” | 1136 | Oliver, “a young |
“By Mahounde” quod he “thou arte not wyse, | knight lately dubbed.” | |
For thy comyng shaltowe sore rewe. | ||
I holde Charles but a foole | Ferumbras observes, | |
To sende the hide to me, | 1140 | “Charles is a fool to |
I shall the lerne a newe scole, | send thee. | |
If thoue so hardy to fighte be. | ||
I wende, he wolde haue sende Roulande, | ||
Olyue and iiij mo Dosyperys, | 1144 | |
That hade bene mygħty men of honde | Go and tell him to | |
Bataile to a-bide stronge and fiers. | send me Roland and | |
With the me liste no playe begynne, | Oliver, and such four | |
Ride agay and saye him soo! | 1148 | other douzepeers. For |
Of the may I no worshype wynne, | little honour were it | |
Though I slougħ the and such V mo.” | to me to fight with | |
“Howe longe” quod Olyue “wiltowe plete? | thee.” | |
Take thy armes and come to me, | 1152 | “Spare thy words,” |
And prove þat thou saiest in dede, | says Oliver, “and | |
For boost thou blowest, and þenkes124 me.” | take thy arms.” | |
Whan Ferumbras herde him speke so wel, |
‹p034› OLIVER LAYS HOLD OF THE BOTTLES OF BALM,
He caught his helme in grete Ire, | 1156 | Ferumbras is wrath |
That wroght was of goode fyne stele | and seizes his | |
With Perlis pight, Rubeis and Saphire. | helmet, which Oliver | |
Olyue halpe him it to onlase; | assists him to lace. | |
Gilte it was alle abowte. | 1160 | Ferumbras thanks him, |
Ferumbras þanked him of his grace | courteously bowing to | |
And curteisly to him gan lowte. | him. They mount their | |
Thai worthed vp o here stedes, | steeds, | |
To Iuste thai made hem preest, | 1164 | |
Of Armes to shewe he myghty dedis | rush together like | |
Thai layden here speres in a-reeste, | fire of thunder, and | |
To-geder thai ronne as fire of thonde, | have their lances | |
That both here Launces to-braste. | 1168 | broken. [leaf 29] |
That they sete, it was grete wonder; | They draw their | |
So harde it was, þat thay gan threste. | swords. | |
Tho drowe thai oute here swordes kene | ||
And smyten to-geder by one assente. | 1172 | |
There thai hitte, it was wele sene; | ||
To sle eche other was here entente. | Ferumbras smites | |
Syr Ferumbras smote Olyue | Oliver on his | |
Vppo the helme righte on hye | 1176 | helmet so that the |
With his swerde of metel cle, | fire flies. Oliver | |
That the fyre he made oute-flye. | strikes at the head | |
Olyue him hitte agay vpo the hede | of Ferumbras, breaks | |
125the hede than fulle sore, | 1180 | away the circle of |
He carfe awaye with mygħt and mayne | his helmet, and the | |
The cercle, that sate vppo his crow. | sword glancing off | |
The stroke glode down by his bake, | down his back, he | |
The Arson he smot ther awaye | 1184 | cuts off two bottles |
And the botelles of bawme withoute lake, | of balm, | |
That uppone the grene ther thai laye, | ||
That were trussed by-hynde him faste. | ||
Tho Ferumbras was fu woo; | 1188 | |
Olyue light adow in haste, | ||
The botellis he seased both two, |
‹p035› THROWS THEM INTO THE RIVER, BUT HAS HIS HORSE KILLED.
He threwe hem into the River than | which he throws into | |
As fer as he myghte throwe. | 1192 | the river. |
“Alas” quod Ferumbras “what doistowe,126 manne? | ||
Thou art wode, as I trowe. | ||
Thai were worth an C m pounde | Ferumbras tells | |
To a man, þat were wounded sore. | 1196 | him that they were |
Ther was no preciosour thinge vppo grounde, | invaluable to a | |
That myghte helpe a man more. | wounded man, and that | |
Thou shalt abye by Mahounde, | he | |
That is a man of myghtes moost. | 1200 | |
I shall breke both bake and crow | ||
And sle the, ther thou goist.” | should atone for | |
Tho Olyue worth vp agay, | their loss with his | |
His swerde he hade oute I-drawe. | 1204 | life. He strikes at |
Ferumbras him smote with mayne | Oliver, who wards off | |
And mente to haue him slawe. | the blow with his | |
He smote as doth the dinte of þondir; | shield, but his steed | |
It glased down by his sheelde | 1208 | is killed under him. |
And carfe his stedes neke a-sonder, | [leaf 30] | |
That dede he fille in the felde. | ||
Wightly Olyue vp-sterte | Oliver quickly starts | |
As Bacheler, doughti of dede, | 1212 | up and tries to kill |
With swerde in honde him for to hirte | his adversary’s horse, | |
Or Ferumbras goode stede. | ||
That Ferumbras aspied welle, | ||
He rode a-waye than ful faste | 1216 | |
And tiede him to a grene hasel, | but Ferumbras rides | |
And come ayen to him in haste | off and ties it to | |
And saide “nowe yelde the to me! | a hazel. “Yield | |
Thou maiste not longe endure; | 1220 | thyself to me,” says |
And leve on Mahounde, þat is so de,127 | Ferumbras; “believe | |
And thy life I shalle the ensure.128 | on Mahound, and I | |
Thou shalt be a Duke in my cont, | will make thee a duke | |
And men haue at thy owe wille. | 1224 | in my country and |
To my Sustir shaltowe wedded be, | give thee my sister.” |
‹p036› THEY TAKE BREATH. OLIVER DECLARES HIS NAME.
It were pite the for to spille!” | ||
“Better” quod Olyue “shul we dele, | ||
By God that is in magiste, | 1228 | “Ere I yield to |
And of my strokes shaltow more fele, | thee,” answered | |
Er I to the shalle yelde me.” | Oliver, “thou shalt | |
Thai smeten togeder witħ egre mode, | feel my strokes.” | |
And nathir of othire dradde; | 1232 | They fight for a |
Thai persed he hauberkes, that were so goode, | considerable time; | |
Tille both thayr bodyes bladde. | the blood ran from | |
Thay foughte soo longe, þat by assente | both their bodies. By | |
Thai drewe hem a litil bysyde, | 1236 | mutual consent they |
A litil while thaym to avente, | stop to take breath. | |
And refresshed hem at þat tyde. | ||
“Generis” quod Ferumbras, | Ferumbras asks Oliver | |
“As thou arte here gentil knighte, | 1240 | again his name and |
Telle me nowe here in this place | kin. | |
Of thy ky and what tho hight; | ||
Me thenkith by the now evermore, | ||
Thou shuldist be one of the xij peris, | 1244 | “Thou must be one |
That maiste fighte with me so sore, | of the douzepeers, | |
And arte so stronge, worthy and fiers.” | as thou fightest so | |
Olyuere answered to hym agay: | well.” | |
“For fe I leve it not ontoolde, | 1248 | “I am Oliver, cousin |
My name is Olyuere certay, | to Charlemagne.” | |
Cousyn to kynge Charles the boolde, | [leaf 31] | |
To whome I shalle the sende | ||
Qwikke or dede this same daye, | 1252 | |
By conqueste here in this feelde, | ||
And make the to renye thy laye.” | ||
“O” quod Ferumbras tha to Olyue, | ||
“Welcome tho arte in-to this place, | 1256 | “Thou art welcome |
I have desyrede many a yere | here,” says | |
To gyfe the harde grace. | Ferumbras; “thou | |
Thou slough my uncle Sir Persagyne, | slewest my uncle, | |
The doughty kinge of Italye, | 1260 | |
The worthyeste kinge þat lyued of men, |
‹p037› OLIVER RECEIVES A HEAVY BLOW.
By Mahounde, thou shalt abye!” | now thou shalt pay | |
Tho thai donge faste to-gede | the penalty!” The | |
While the longe day endured, | 1264 | fight continued the |
Nowe hithe and nowe thide; | whole day. | |
Fro strokes wytħ sheeldes here bodies þai couered. | ||
And at the laste Olyue smote him so | At last Oliver, | |
Vppo the helme, þat was of stele, | 1268 | smiting Ferumbras |
That his swerde brake in two. | upon the helmet, has | |
Tho wepe had he nevere a dele. | his sword broken. | |
Who was woo but Olyuere than? | ||
He saugh noone other remedy. | 1272 | |
He saide “si, as tho arte gentile man, | ||
On me nowe here haue mercy. | ||
It were grete shame I-wis, | ||
And honu were it noo, | 1276 | |
To sle a man wepenles; | ||
That shame wolde neve goo.” | ||
“Nay traitour, thou getiste noo. | ||
Hade I here an hundred and moo! | 1280 | |
Knele dow and yelde the here anoo, | ||
And eles here I woole the sloo.” | ||
Olyue saugh, it wolde not be, | ||
To truste to moch in his grace. | 1284 | |
He ranne to the stede, þat stode by the tre, | He ran to the steed | |
A swerde he raught in þat place, | at the tree and | |
That was trussed on Ferumbras stede, | seized a sword that | |
Of fyne stele goode and stronge. | 1288 | was hanging there; |
He thought he quyte129 Ferumbras his mede. | ||
Almoost hadde he abyde to longe; | ||
For in turnynge Ferumbras him smote, | [leaf 32] | |
That stroke he myghte welle fele, | 1292 | but in turning on |
It come on hym so hevy and hoote, | Ferumbras he received | |
That down it made hym to knele. | a blow that made him | |
Tho was Olyue sore ashamede | kneel down. | |
And saide “thou cursed Sarasyne, | 1296 |
‹p038› CHARLES PRAYS TO GOD.
Thy proude pride shall be atamed, | ||
By God and by seinte Qwyntyne. | ||
Thou hast stole on me that dynte, | ||
I shall quyte the thy hire.” | 1300 | |
A stroke than Olyue him lente, | But Oliver returns | |
That hym thought his eye we on fi. | him fearful stroke. | |
Kinge Charles in his pavilo was | Charles, seeing | |
And loked towarde þat fyghte | 1304 | Oliver on his knees, |
And saugh, howe fiers Ferumbras | ||
Made Olyuere knele dow right. | ||
Wo was him tho in his herte; | ||
To Ihesu Criste he made his mone; | 1308 | prayed to Christ |
It was a sight of peynes smerte, | ||
That Olyuere kneled so sone: | ||
“O Lord, God in Trinite, | ||
That of myghtis tho arte moost, | 1312 | |
By vertue of thy maieste | ||
That alle knoweste and woste, | ||
Lete not this hethen man | ||
Thy seruaunte ouercome in fyght, | 1316 | |
That on the bileve ne kan, | ||
Ihesu, Lorde, for thy myghte! | ||
But graunte thy man the victorye, | that he might grant | |
And the Payny skomfited to be, | 1320 | the victory over the |
As thou arte Almyghty God of glorye! | Pagan. | |
Nowe mekely, Lorde, I pray to the.” | ||
To Charles anoone an Aungel came | ||
And broght him tidingges sone, | 1324 | An angel announces |
That God had herde his praie tha | him, that his prayer | |
And graunte him his bone. | was heard. Charles | |
Tho Charles thanked God aboue130 | thanks God. | |
With herte and thought, worde and dede, | 1328 | |
And saide “blessed be tho, lorde almyghty,† | ||
That helpiste thy seruaunte in nede.” | ||
These Champions to-gedir thai gone | [leaf 33] |
‹p039› FERUMBRAS BEING WOUNDED CRIES MERCY.
With strokes grete and eke sure, | 1332 | They begin again. |
Eche of hem donge othir o, | ||
Alle the while thai myghte endu. | ||
Ferumbras brake his swerde | Ferumbras breaks his | |
On Olyueris helme on hye. | 1336 | sword on Oliver’s |
Tho wexe he ful sore a-ferde; | helmet. | |
He ranne for an othir redyly | He runs for another | |
And saide “Olyuere, yelde the to me | and asks Oliver to | |
And leve thy Criste laye, | 1340 | surrender. |
Thou shalte have alle131 my kingdome free | ||
And alle aftir my daye.” | ||
“Fye, Saresyne” quod Olyuere tha, | ||
“Trowest thou, that I were wode, | 1344 | |
To forsake him, þat made me ma | ||
And boght me with his hert blode.” | ||
He raught a stroke to Ferumbras, | But Oliver aims at | |
On his helme it gan dow glyde, | 1348 | Ferumbras a blow |
It brast his hawberke at þat ras | which cuts his | |
And carfe hym throughe-oute his syde, | hauberk, so | |
His bare guttis men mygħt see; | that his bowels are | |
The blode faste dow ranne. | 1352 | laid bare. |
“Hoo, Olyvere, I yelde me to the, | Ferumbras implores | |
And here I become thy man. | his mercy, and | |
I am so hurte, I may not stonde, | ||
I put me alle in thy grace. | 1356 | |
My goddis ben false by water and londe, | consents to be | |
I reneye hem alle here in this place,132 | christened, his gods | |
Baptised nowe wole I be. | having proved false. | |
To Ihesu Crist I wole me take, | 1360 | |
That Charles the kinge shal sene,133 | ||
And alle my goddes for-sake. | ||
Take myn hawberke and do it on the, | He requested him to | |
Thou shalte haue fu grete nede. | 1364 | take his hauberk, to |
‹p040› THE SARACENS RUSH OUT OF THE WOOD.
X thousande Saresyns waiten vppo me, | ||
And therfore go take my stede. | fetch his horse, | |
Lay me to-fore the, I the praye, | and to carry him | |
And lede me to thy tente. | 1368 | to his own tent. |
Hye the faste forth in thy way, | [leaf 34] | |
That the Saresyns the not hente.” | ||
A-noo it was done, as he ordeynede, | ||
And faste forth thai ryden.134 | 1372 | |
The Saresyns anone assembled, | But the Saracens, | |
For to haue with hem foghten. | who lay concealed | |
Ferumbras saugħ the feelde thore | in the wood, rush | |
Of Sarsynes fully filled; | 1376 | out. Oliver, being |
Of Olyvere dradde he ful sore, | surrounded, sets | |
That Saresyns shulde him haue killed. | ||
He praide, that he wolde let him dow | ||
“Vndir yonde Olyfe tree, | 1380 | |
For if ye cast me dow here, with hors shoo135 | ||
Alle to-trede shalle I be.” | down Ferumbras under | |
He priked forth and layde him tha,† | an olive-tree, and | |
Out of the horses trase, | 1384 | defends himself with |
And with his swerde by-gan him we, | his sword, | |
For amonge hem alle he was. | ||
A Saresy smote him witħ a spere, | ||
That it brake on pecis thre; | 1388 | |
His hauberke mygħt he not de, | ||
So stronge and welle I-wroght was he. | ||
He hit þat Saresyns with his swerde | dealing the Saracens | |
Througħ the helme in-to the brayne. | 1392 | many a hard blow. |
He made an other as sore aferde, | ||
He smote of his Arme with mayne. | Then Roland rushed | |
But tha come Roulande witħ Durnedale | into the throng of | |
And made way him a-bowte. | 1396 | the enemy and slew |
He slowe hem dow in the vale, | many; | |
Of him hade thai grete dowte. | ||
The prees of Saresyns was so stronge |
‹p041› ROLAND AND OLIVER ARE MADE CAPTIVES.
A-boute Roulande that tyde. | 1400 | |
Thai sloughe his horsys with thronge, | his horse being | |
And dartis throwe on every syde. | killed by arrows and | |
Whan Roulande was on his Fete, | darts, | |
Tha was he woo witħ-alle. | 1404 | he fights on foot, |
Many of hem he felte yete | ||
And dede to grounde made hem falle. | ||
At the last his swerde brake, | ||
Tha hadde he wepy noo, | 1408 | but his sword |
As he smote a Saresyns bake | breaking, [leaf 35] | |
A-sundre dow to the Arso. | ||
Tho was he caught, he mygħt not flee, | he is taken | |
His hondes thai bounde faste | 1412 | |
And lad him forth to here Cite, | and led away. | |
And in depe priso they hem caste. | ||
Olyue sawe, howe he was ladde, | ||
A sorye ma tha was he; | 1416 | |
Him hadde leuer to haue bene dede | ||
Than suffren that myschief to be. | ||
Smertly aftire he pursued tho, | Oliver rides to | |
To reskue his dere brother. | 1420 | rescue him, |
The prees was so grete, he myghte not so, | ||
It myghte be no othir, | ||
Be he was cowþe136 by ver force | ||
With LX of Astopartes.137 | 1424 | |
Thai hurte him foule and slougħ his hors | but his horse being | |
With gauylokes and wyth dartis. | also killed, | |
Yet on foote, ere he were foolde, | ||
He slough of hem fiftene. | 1428 | |
He was not slay, as god woolde, | he is overpowered | |
But taken and bounded138 with tene. | and bound. Both were | |
Tho were take to Lucafe, | conducted to Lukafer | |
The proude kinge of Baldas, | 1432 | of Baldas. |
Both Roulande and Olyue. |
‹p042› CHARLES FINDS FERUMBRAS.
Gladde was he of that cas. | ||
Kinge Charles was in herte woo, | ||
When he saughe his neuewes so ladde, | 1436 | Charles sees them, |
He cried to the Frenshme tho: | and calls for a | |
“Reskue we these knyghtes at nede.” | rescue. Many enemies | |
The kynge himselfe slough many one, | were slain, but the | |
So dede the Barons bolde. | 1440 | Saracens had fled |
It wolde not bene, thai were ago, | with their prisoners, | |
Magre who so woolde. | and Charles is | |
The Saresyns drewe hem to here Cite, | obliged to turn back. | |
Kinge Charles turned agayne. | 1444 | Under a holm tree |
He saugħ under an holme tre, | they find Ferumbras. | |
Where a knight him semed lay slay. | ||
Thederward he rode witħ swerde in honde. | ||
Tho he saugħ, he was alyve; | 1448 | |
He lay walowynge vppon the sonde | ||
With blody woundes fyve. | [leaf 36] | |
“What arte thow?” quod Charlemayne, | ||
“Who hath the hurte so sore?” | 1452 | |
“I am Ferumbras” he saide certay, | ||
“That am of hethe lore.” | ||
“O fals Saresy” quod the kinge, | ||
“Thou shalte have sorowe astyte; | 1456 | whom he is going to |
By the I haue lost my two Cosynes, | put to death. | |
Thy hede shalle I of-smyte.” | ||
“O gentil kinge” quod Ferumbrase, | ||
“Olyuere my maister me hight | 1460 | But on his requesting |
To be Baptised by goddis grace, | to be baptized, | |
And to dye a Criste knighte. | ||
Honu were it noon to the | ||
A discoumfite ma to slo, | 1464 | |
That is conuerted and Baptized wolde be | ||
And thy man bycome also.” | ||
The kinge hade pite of him tha, | Charles took pity | |
He toke him to his grace | 1468 | with him, |
And assyned anoo a man |
‹p043› ROLAND AND OLIVER ARE BROUGHT TO THE SOUDAN.
To lede him to his place. | led him to his tent, | |
He sende to him his surgyne | and ordered a surgeon | |
To hele his woundes wyde. | 1472 | to attend him. |
He ordeyned to him such medycy, | ||
That sone myght he go and ryde. | He soon recovered, | |
The kinge commaunded bishope Turpy | ||
To make a fonte redye, | 1476 | |
To Baptise Ferumbras þerin | ||
In the name of god Almygħtye. | ||
He was Cristened in þat welle, | and bishop Turpin | |
Floreyne the kinge alle him calle, | 1480 | baptised him, by the |
He forsoke the foule feende of helle | name of Floreyn. | |
And his fals goddis alle. | But he continued to | |
Nought for tha Ferumbras | be called Ferumbras | |
Alle his life cleped was he, | 1484 | all his life. |
And aftirwarde in somme place, | Afterwards he was | |
Floreyne of Rome Cite. | known as Floreyn of | |
God for him many myracles shewe, | Rome | |
So holy a man he by-came, | 1488 | on account of his |
That witnessitħ both lerned and lewde, | holiness. | |
The fame of him so ranne. |
|
By the kinge of Boldas. | enquires their names. | |
The Sowda hem sore affrayned, | ||
What þat here names were. | 1496 | |
Rouland saide and noght alayned: | ||
“Syr Roulande and sire Olyuere, | They confess their | |
Nevewes to Kinge Charles of Fraunce, | names. | |
That worthy kinge and Emperoure, | 1500 | |
That nowe are takyn by myschaunce | ||
To be prisoneres here in thy toure.” | ||
“A, Olyue, arte thou here? | ||
That haste my sone distroyede, | 1504 |
‹p044› ROLAND AND OLIVER ARE IMPRISONED.
And Rouland that arte his fere, | ||
That so ofte me hatħ anoyed. | ||
To Mahounde I make a vowe here, | The Soudan swears | |
That to morue, ere I do ete, | 1508 | they shall both be |
Ye shulle be slay botħ qwik in fere, | executed the next | |
And lives shalle ye bothe lete.” | morning before his | |
Tho saide maide Florepas: | dinner. | |
“My fader so derewortħ and de, | 1512 | But Floripas advises |
Ye shulle be avysed of this cas, | him to detain them as | |
How and in what manere | hostages, and | |
My brothir, þat is to priso take, | ||
May be delyuered by hem nowe, | 1516 | |
By cause of these two knightes sake, | ||
That bene in warde here with yo. | ||
Wherefore I counsaile yo, my fader dere, | ||
To have mynde of Sir Ferumbras. | 1520 | to remember his son |
Pute hem in youre priso here, | Ferumbras, | |
Tille ye haue better space. | ||
So that ye haue my brother agay | for whom they might | |
For hem, þat ye haue here; | 1524 | be exchanged. |
And certey elles wole he be slay, | ||
That is to you so lefe and dere.” | ||
“A, Floripp, I-blessed thou bee, | ||
Thy counsaile is goode at nede, | 1528 | The Soudan finds her |
I wolde not leve my sone so free, | counsel good, | |
So Mahounde moost me spede, | ||
For al the Realme of hethen Spayne, | [leaf 38] | |
That is so brode and large. | 1532 | |
Sone clepe forth my gaylour Bretomayne, | and orders his gaoler | |
That he of hem hadde his charge, | Bretomayn to imprison | |
“Caste hem in your priso depe, | them, | |
Mete and drinke gyfe hem none, | 1536 | but to leave them |
Chayne hem faste, þat thay not slepe; | without food. | |
For here goode daies bene a-gone.” | ||
Tho were thay cast in prison depe140; |
‹p045› FLORIPAS COMPASSIONATES THEIR SUFFERINGS.
Every tyde the see came inne. | 1540 | At high tide the sea |
Thay myght not see, so was it myrke, | filled their deep | |
The watir wente to her chynne. | cells. They suffered | |
The salte watir hem greved sore, | much from the salt | |
Here woundis sore did smerte. | 1544 | water, from their |
Hungir and thurste greved heme yet more, | wounds, and from | |
It wente yet more nere here herte. | hunger. | |
Who maye live withoute mete? | ||
vj dayes hadde thay rigħt none, | 1548 | On the sixth day, |
Ner drinke that thay mygħt gete, | ||
Bute loked vppon the harde stone. | ||
So on a daye, as God it wolde, | ||
Floripas to hir garde wente, | 1552 | Floripas, who was |
To geder Floures in morne colde. | gathering flowers in | |
Here maydyns fro hir she sente, | her garden, heard | |
For she herde grete lamentacio | them lament. | |
In the Priso, that was ther nye; | 1556 | |
She supposed by ymagynacio, | ||
That it was the prisoners sory. | ||
She wente he ner to here more, | ||
Thay wailed for defaute of mete. | 1560 | Moved to compassion, |
She rued on hem anoo ful sore, | she asks her | |
She thought, how she myght hem beste it gete. | governess Maragound | |
She spake to her Maistras Maragounde, | to help her in | |
Howe she wolde the prisoneres fede. | 1564 | getting food for the |
The develle of helle hir confounde, | prisoners. Maragound | |
She wolde not assente to þat dede, | refuses, and reminds | |
But saide “Damesel, thou arte woode, | Floripas of her | |
Thy Fadir did vs alle defende, | 1568 | father’s command. |
Both mete and drinke and othere goode | [leaf 39] | |
That no man shulde hem thider sende.” | ||
Floripe by-thought hir on a gyle | Floripas, thinking of | |
And cleped Maragounde anoon rigħt, | 1572 | a trick, called to |
To the wyndowe to come a while | her governess to come | |
And se ther a wonder syght: | to a window and | |
“Loke oute” she saide “and see a fer |
‹p046› FLORIPAS KILLS THE GAOLER.
The Porpais pley as thay were wode.” | 1576 | see the porpoises |
Maragounde lokede oute, Floripe come ne | sporting beneath. | |
And shofed hire oute in to the flode. | Maragound looking | |
“Go there” she saide “the devel the spede! | out, is pushed into | |
My counsail shaltowe never biwry. | 1580 | the flood. |
Who so wole not helpe a ma at nede, | ||
On evel deth mote he dye!” | ||
She toke witħ hire maidyns two, | ||
To Britomayne she wente hir waye | 1584 | Floripas asks |
And saide to him, she moste go | Bretomayn to let her | |
To visete the prisoneris that daye, | see the prisoners. | |
And saide “sir, for alle loues, | ||
Lete me thy prisoneres see. | 1588 | |
I wole the gife botħ goolde and gloues, | ||
And counsail shalle it bee.” | ||
Brytomayne that Iaylor kene | ||
Answered to hir sone agayne | 1592 | |
And saide “Damesel, so mote I the, | ||
Tha were I worthy to be slay. | ||
Hath not youre Fader charged me, | ||
To kepe hem fro every wyght? | 1596 | |
And yet ye wole these traytours see? | ||
I wole goo telle him Anoo right.” | ||
He gan to turne him anone for to go, | ||
To make a playnte on Floripas. | 1600 | The gaoler threatened |
She sued him as faste as she myghte go, | to complain to her | |
For to gif him harde grace. | father, but Floripas, | |
With the keye cloge, þat she caugħt, | having seized his | |
Witħ goode wille she maute141 than, | 1604 | key-clog, dashed |
Such a stroke she hym the raught, | out his brains. She | |
The brayne sterte oute of his hede þa. | then went to tell | |
To hire Fader forth she gotħ | her father, she had | |
And saide “Sire, I telle you here, | 1608 | surprised [leaf 40] |
I saugħ a sight, that was me lotħ, | the gaoler feeding | |
Howe the fals Iailour fedde your prisone, | the prisoners and |
‹p047› THE SOUDAN GIVES THE PRISONERS INTO HER GUARD.
And how the covenaunte made was, | promising to deliver | |
Whan thai shulde delyuered be; | 1612 | them; wherefore she |
Wherefore I slougħ him witħ a mace. | had slain him. | |
Dere Fadir, forgif it me!” | ||
“My doghtir dere, that arte so free,142 | ||
The warde of hem now gif I the. | 1616 | The Soudan gives the |
Loke, here sorowe be evere newe, | prisoners into her | |
Tille that Ferumbras delyuered be.” | guard. | |
She thanked her Fadere fele sithe | ||
And toke her maydyns, and forth she gotħ, | 1620 | She now proceeded to |
To the prisone she hyed hire swytħ. | the prison, | |
The priso dore vp she dothe | ||
And saide “sires, what be ye, | ||
That make here this ruly moone? | 1624 | |
What yo lakkitħ, tellyth me; | asked the prisoners | |
For we be here nowe alle alone.” | what they wanted, | |
Tho spake Roulande with hevy chere | ||
To Floripe, that was bothe gente and fre, | 1628 | |
And saide “lo, we two caytyfes here | ||
For defaute of mete dede moste be. | ||
vj dayes be comy and goo, | ||
Sith we were loked in priso here, | 1632 | |
That mete nor drinke hade we noo | ||
To comforte witħ oure hevy che. | ||
But woolde god of myghtes moost, | ||
The Sowdo wolde let vs oute goo, | 1636 | |
We to fight witħ alle his Ooste, | ||
To be slay in feelde anoo. | ||
To murthir me for defaute of mete, | ||
It is grete shame tille a kinge; | 1640 | |
For every man most nedes ete, | ||
Or ellis may he do no thinge.” | ||
Tho saide Floripe with wordes mylde, | and promised to | |
“I wolde fayne, ye were now here, | 1644 | protect them from any |
From harme skatħ143 I wole you shelde, | harm. |
‹p048› CHARLES DESPATCHES GUY TO THE SOUDAN.
And gife you mete with right gode che.” | ||
A rope to hem she lete dow goo, | She let down a rope, | |
That above was teyde faste. | 1648 | [leaf 41] and drew up |
She and hir maydyns drewe þer vppo, | both, and led them to | |
Tille vp thay hadde hem at the last. | her apartments. | |
She led hem into here chambir dere, | ||
That arrayed for hem was rigħt wele, | 1652 | |
Both Roulande and Olyvere, | ||
And gafe he there a right gode mele. | There they ate, | |
And whan thay hadde ete alle her fille, | ||
A batħ for hem was redy there, | 1656 | took a bath, |
Ther-to thay went ful fayre and stille, | ||
And aftyr to bedde with right gode che. | and went to bed. | |
Now Floripas chamber is here prisone, | ||
Withoute wetinge of the Sowdo; | 1660 | The Soudan knew |
Thai were ful mery in that Dongeo, | nothing of his | |
For of he wiste ma never oone. | prisoners being in | |
Now lete we hem be and mery make, | Floripas’ chamber. | |
Tille god sende hem gode delyueraunce. | 1664 | |
Aftir the tyme, þat thay were take, | ||
What did Charles, the kinge of Fraunce, | ||
Ther-of wole we speke nowe, | ||
Howe he cleped forth Sir Gy | 1668 | Meanwhile Charlemagne |
And saide “on my message shaltowe, | tells Guy that he | |
Therfore make the faste redy, | must go to the | |
To bidde the Sowde sende me my Nevewes botħ | Soudan to demand the | |
And the Releqes also of Rome; | 1672 | surrender of Roland |
Or I shal make him so wrotħ, | and Oliver, and of | |
He sha not wete what to done. | the relics of Rome. | |
And by þat god, þat hath me wroght, | ||
I shal him leve Towre ner Tow. | 1676 | |
This barga shal so dere be bought | ||
In dispite of his god Mahou.” | Naymes of Bavaria |
|
‹p049› THE OTHERS REMONSTRATE, BUT MUST GO TOO.
Alle messengeris doth he shende? | certainly be slain; | |
Ye haue lost inowe, lese no mo | and that they ought | |
Onworthily Olyue and Roulande.” | 1684 | to be anxious not to |
“By god, and thou shalt with him go, | lose any more besides | |
For al thy grete brode londe.” | Rouland and Oliver. |
|
By Gode thou shalte, be tho never so loth.” | Guy.’ Ogier the Dane |
|
Or it shalle the repente ful sore.” |
|
Go thou also, tho shalte not chese!” |
|
“Dresse the forth witħ he eke!” |
|
How he wole thy Barons spille?”— | ||
“Trusse the forth eke, sir Dasaberde, | ||
Or I shalle the sone make! | 1708 | |
For of all thinge thou arte aferde, | ||
Yet arte tho neyther hurte ner take.” |
|
“Thou goist eke, make the in hast redye!” | must go too, |
|
‹p050› THE SOUDAN ASSEMBLES HIS COUNCIL.
Thou maiste haue nede to he yette.”— | ||
“Thou shalte goo eke for alle thy boost, | ||
Haue done and make the fast yare! | 1720 | |
Of my nede gyfe tho no coost, | ||
Ther-of haue thou right no care!” |
|
His witte was not worth a leke: | [leaf 43] | |
“Woltowe for Angre thy Barons sende | ||
To þat Tiraunte, þat alle men sleitħ? | 1728 | |
Or thou doist for þat ende, | ||
To bringe thy xij peres to the detħ.” | ||
The kinge was wrotħ and swore in halle | ||
By him, þat boght him witħ his blode: | 1732 | |
“On my messange shall ye go alle! | ||
Be ye never so wrotħ or wode.” | ||
Thay toke here lefe and fortħ thay yede, | The knights take | |
It availed not agayne him to sayne. | 1736 | leave and start. |
I pray, god gif hem gode spede! | ||
Ful harde it was to come agay. |
|
And what that he myght beste done. | ||
“Sortybraunnce and Bronlande144” seyde he, | Sortibrance and | |
“Of counsail ye be fulle wyse. | 1744 | Brouland |
How shal I do to avenge me | ||
Of kinge Charles, and in what wyse? | ||
He brennyth my Toures and my Citees, | ||
And Burges he levethe me never oo. | 1748 | |
He stroieth my me, my londe, my fees. | ||
Thus shalle it not longe goo. | ||
And yet me greveth most of alle, | ||
He hath made Ferumbras renay his laye. | 1752 |
‹p051› HE DESPATCHES XII MESSENGERS TO CHARLES.
Therfore my counselors I calle, | ||
To remedy this, howe thay best maye. | ||
For me were lever that he were slay, | ||
Thane he a Criste hounde shulde be, | 1756 | |
Or witħ Wolfes be rente and slay, | ||
By Mahounde mygħty of dignyte.” | ||
To answerde Sortybraunce and Broulande | advise him | |
And saide “gode counsaile we shal yo gyfe, | 1760 | |
If thoue wilte do aftyr covenaunte, | ||
It shal yo profit, while yo lyve. | ||
Take xij knightis of worthy dede | to send 12 knights, | |
And sende hem to Charles on message nowe. | 1764 | and to bid Charles |
A-raye hem welle in roial wede, | ||
For th honou and for thy prowe. | [leaf 44] | |
Bidde Charles sende thy sone to the | to give up Ferumbras | |
And voyde thy londe in alle haste, | 1768 | and to withdraw from |
Or ellis thou shalt him honge on a tre, | his country. | |
As hye, as any shippes maste.” | ||
“Nowe by Mahounde” quod Laban, | ||
“This counseil is both trewe and goode, | 1772 | |
I shalle him leve for no ma | ||
To parforme this, though he we woode.” | ||
He did his lettris write in haste, | ||
The knightes were called to goo þerwitħ, | 1776 | The knights are |
That thay hyȝe he to Charles faste | dispatched. | |
And charke145 hy vppo life and lithe. | ||
Fortħ thai ride towarde Mantrible þa, | ||
In a medowe, was fayre and grene, | 1780 | Near Mantrible |
Thai mette witħ Charles messageris te. | they meet with the | |
Duke Neymes axed he, what thai wolde mene, | Christian messengers. | |
And saide “Lordynges, whens come ye? | Duke Naymes inquires | |
And whider ye are mente, telle vs this tyde.” | 1784 | whither they intend |
“Fro the worthy Sowdo” tha saide he, | to go. | |
“To Charles on message shalle we ride, |
‹p052› THE PEERS KILL THE SOUDAN’S MESSENGERS.
Euel tithyngges we shalle him telle, | ||
Fro Laban, that is lorde of Spayne. | 1788 | |
Farewele, felowes, we may not dwelle.” | ||
“A-byde” quod Gy “and turne agayne, | Having heard their | |
We wole speke with yo, er ye goo, | message, | |
For we be messengeris of his. | 1792 | |
Ye shal aby everichone, | ||
So God brynge me to blis.” | ||
Anoo here swerdes oute thay brayde | ||
And smote dow right al a-boute. | 1796 | |
Tille the hethe were dow layde, | ||
Thai reseyued many a sore cloute. | ||
Thai smyte of here hedes alle, | the delegates of | |
Eche ma toke one in his lappe. | 1800 | Charles cut off their |
Fal what so euer byfalle, | heads, which they | |
To the Soudo wole they trappe. | take with them to | |
Tille thai come to Egremoure, | present to the Soudan | |
Thai stynte for no worldes thinge; | 1804 | at Agremore. |
Anone thai fonde the Sawda thore, | ||
At his mete proudely sittynge, | [leaf 45] The Soudan | |
And þat maide fai Dame Floripas | was just dining. | |
And xiiij princes of grete price | 1808 | |
And kinge Lukafe of Baldas, | ||
Thas was both bolde, hardy and wyse. | ||
Doughty Duke Neymes of Baue | Naymes delivers | |
To the Sowdone his message tolde | 1812 | his message: ‘God |
And saide “god, þat made heve so cle, | confound Laban and | |
He saue kinge Charles so bolde | all his Saracens, and | |
And confounde Laba and all his me, | save Charles, | |
That on Mahounde byleved146 | 1816 | |
And gife hem evel endinge! ame. | ||
To morue, longe er it be eve, | who commands thee | |
He commaundith the vppo thy life | to send back his | |
His Nevewes home to him sende, | 1820 | two nephews and to |
And the Religes147 of Rome withoute strife; | restore the relics.’ |
‹p053› THE PEERS ARE IMPRISONED IN FLORIPAS’ TOWER.
And ellis getist thou an evel ende! | ||
xij lurdeynes mette vs on the waye; | ||
Thai saide, thay come streight fro the. | 1824 | |
Thai made it botħ stoute and gay; | ||
Here hedis here maistowe see. | They then produce the | |
Thai saide, thai wolde to Charles goo, | heads of the Soudan’s | |
Evel tidingges him to telle. | 1828 | messengers. |
Loo here here heddis euerychone, | ||
Here soulis bene in helle.” | ||
“O” quod Lavane “what may this be, | ||
To suff this amonge my knightes alle? | 1832 | |
To be rebuked thus here of the | The Soudan vowed | |
At mete in myn owe halle! | a vow that they | |
To Mahounde myghty I make a vowe, | should all ten be | |
Ye shall be hanged alle ten, | 1836 | hanged as soon as |
Anoon as I have ete I-nowe, | he had finished | |
In presence of alle my me.” | his dinner. But | |
Maide Floripas answered tho | Floripas recommended | |
And saide “my derworth Fadir de! | 1840 | him to put off his |
By my counsaile ye shal not so, | resolution, until | |
Tille ye haue your Barons alle in fe, | a general council | |
That thai may se what is the best, | of his barons had | |
For to delyuere my brother Sir Ferumbras. | 1844 | determined on the |
And aftirward, if þat ye liste, | best way of the | |
Ye may gife hem ful evel grace.” | liberation of | |
“Gramercy, doghter, thou saieste welle, | Ferumbras. [leaf 46] | |
Take hem alle into thy warde. | 1848 | The Soudan gives them |
Do feter hem faste in Ire and stele | into her guard. | |
And set hem in strayȝte garde. | ||
Thus was I neuer rebukede er nowe; | ||
Mahounde myghty gyfe he sorowe! | 1852 | |
Thay shalle be flayn and honged on a bowe, | ||
Longe ere tyme148 to morowe.” | Floripas leads the | |
Flori toke these messangeris | knights into her | |
And ladde hem vp in-to here tou, | 1856 | tower, where |
‹p054› FLORIPAS ENQUIRES AFTER GUY.
There thai founde two of here feris. | they were glad to | |
Thay thanked thereof god of honoure. | find Roland and | |
Tho sayde Duke Neymys of Baue: | Oliver. | |
“Gladde men we be nowe here, | 1860 | |
To fynde Roulande and Olyue | ||
In helthe of bodye and of goode che.” | ||
Thai kissed eche other with herte gladde | ||
And thanked god of his grace; | 1864 | |
And eche toolde othir, howe thay sped hadde, | They told each other | |
And howe thay come in-to that place | how they had fared. | |
By helpe of mayde Flori hire self, | ||
“God kepe hir in honoure! | 1868 | |
For thus hath she brought vs hider alle twelfe, | ||
To dwelle in hir owe boure.” | ||
Tho thay wessh and wente to mete, | After washing, | |
And were served welle and fyne | 1872 | |
Of suche goode, as she myght gete, | ||
Of Venyso, brede and gode wyne. | ||
There thai were gladde and wel at ease; | they dined off | |
The Soudo ne wist it noght. | 1876 | venison, bread and |
Aftyr thay slepe and toke her ese, | wine, and then | |
Of no man tha thay ne roght. | went to sleep. The | |
On the morowe Flori, that mayde fre, | following day, | |
To Duke Neymes spake in game: | 1880 | Floripas asks Naymes |
“Sir gentil knigħt,” tho saide she, | his name, | |
“Telle me, what is your name.” | ||
“Whi axe ye, my lady dere, | ||
My name here to knowe alle?” | 1884 | |
“For he149 spake with so bolde chere | ||
To my Fadir yestirdaye in his halle. | ||
Be not ye the Duke of Burgoyne, sir G, | and enquires after | |
Nevewe unto the kinge Charles so fre?” | 1888 | [leaf 47] Guy of |
“Noe, certes, lady, it is not I, | Burgundy, whom she | |
It is yondir knight, þat ye may see.” | had loved for a long | |
“A, him have I loved many a day; | time, and for |
‹p055› GUY CONSENTS TO TAKE HER FOR HIS WIFE.
And yet knowe I him noght. | 1892 | whom she would do all |
For his loue I do alle that I maye, | she could for their | |
To chere yo witħ dede and thought. | benefit, and would be | |
For his love wille I cristenede be | baptised, | |
And lefe Mahoundes laye. | 1896 | |
Spekith to him nowe for me, | ||
As I yo truste maye; | ||
And but he wole graunte me his loue, | if he would agree to | |
Of yo askape shalle none here. | 1900 | love her in return. |
By him, þat is almyghty aboue, | ||
Ye shalle abye it ellis ful dere.” | ||
Tho wente Duke Neymes to Sir Gye | ||
And saide “This ladye lovetħ the, | 1904 | Naymes tells Guy |
For thy loue she maketħ us alle merye, | ||
And Baptizede wole she be. | ||
Ye shalle hir take to your wedded wife, | to take her for his | |
For alle vs she may saue.” | 1908 | wife, |
“By God” quod Gye “þat gafe me life, | But Guy refuses, | |
Hire wole I never haue, | ||
Wyle I neuer take hire ner no woma, | as he never will take | |
But Charles the kinge hir me gife. | 1912 | a wife, unless she be |
I hight him, as I was trewe ma, | ||
To holde it, while I lyve.” | given him by Charles. | |
Tho spake Roulande and Olyue, | Rouland and Oliver | |
Certyfyinge him of he myschefe, | 1916 | persuaded him, |
Tellinge him of the parelles, þat þay in we, | ||
For to take this lady to his wedded wife. | ||
“But tho helpe in this nede, | ||
We be here in grete doute. | 1920 | |
Almyghty god shalle quyte thy mede, | ||
Elles come we nevere hennys oute.” | ||
Thus thay treted him to and fro; | ||
At the laste he sayde, he wolde. | 1924 | so that he at last |
Floripas thay cleped fortħ tho; | consented. | |
And brought fourth a Cuppe of golde, | Floripas, holding a | |
Ful of noble myghty wyne, | golden cup of wine, |
‹p056› LUKAFER VISITS THE PRISONERS.
And saide “my loue and my lorde, | 1928 | [leaf 48] |
Myn herte, my body, my goode is thy,” | ||
And kissed him witħ that worde, | kissed him, and | |
And “sir” she saide “drinke to me, | requested him to | |
As the Gyse is of my londe; | 1932 | drink to her after |
And I shalle drinke agay to the, | the fashion of her | |
As to my worthy hosbonde.” | country. She also | |
Thay clipped and kissed botħ in fere | drinks to him. They | |
And made grete Joye and game, | 1936 | all make merry. |
And so did alle, that were the, | ||
Thai made ful mery alle in same. | ||
Tho spake Floripas to the Barons boolde | ||
And saide “I haue armu I-nowe; | 1940 | |
Therfore I tel yo, what I wolde, | ||
And þat ye dide for your prowe. | ||
To morue, wha my Fadir is at his soupe, | For the following day | |
Ye shalle come in alle attonys; | 1944 | |
Loke ye spare for no fere, | ||
Sle dow and breke botħ bake and bones; | ||
Kithe yo knightis of hardynesse! | ||
Ther is none helpe, but in this wyse, | 1948 | |
Then moste ye shewe youre prowes, | ||
And wynne this Castel in this guyse.” | ||
Thai sayden alle, it was welle saide, | ||
And gladde thay were of this counsaile. | 1952 | |
Here armu was fortħ layde, | they all prepare to | |
At souper the Sowdo to assaile. | assail the Soudan at | |
Kinge Lucafere prayde the Sawdo, | supper. Lukafer comes | |
That he wolde gif him lysence, | 1956 | to the Soudan and |
To the prisoners for to goo, | asks leave to see the | |
To see the maner of her presence. | prisoners, in order | |
He gafe him lefe, and forth he wente | to know the manner of | |
Vp vnto Floripas Toure. | 1960 | their detention. |
To asspie the maner was his enten, | ||
He to accuse agayne honoure. | Finding the door | |
Wha he come, he founde the dore fast I-stoke, | locked, he burst it |
‹p057› HE TEACHES THEM A NEW GAME.
He smote there-on with his fist, | 1964 | open with a blow of |
That the bar bega to broke. | his fist. | |
To make debate, wel him list. | ||
“Who artowe” quod Floripas150 | ||
“Þat maketh he sucħ araye†?” | 1968 | |
“I am kinge Lucafere of Baldas, | [leaf 49] | |
The Sowdo sente me hidir in faye; | ||
To see his prisoneris is my desire | ||
And speke with hem everycho, | 1972 | He told them that he |
To talke with hem by the fire | was come to speak to | |
And speke of dedis of Armes amonge.” | them, | |
Tho saide Duke Neymes “welcome be ye | ||
To us prisoners here! | 1976 | |
What is your wille, nowe telle ye; | ||
For we be me of feble chere.” | ||
“I woolde wete of Charles the kinge, | and to enquire after | |
What ma he is in his contre, | 1980 | Charlemagne. |
And what meyne he hatħ, and of what thinge | ||
He rekyneth moost his dignyte.” | ||
Duke Neymes saide “an Emperoure | Duke Naymes answers. | |
And kinge he is of many a londe, | 1984 | |
Of Citeis, Castels, and many a Toure, | ||
Dukes, Erles, Barons bowynge to his honde.” | ||
“But saye me, felowe, what is your vse, | ||
To do in cont aftyr the none. | 1988 | He then asks what |
And what is the custome of your hous, | amusements they have | |
Tille me to souper shalle gone?” | after dinner. Naymes | |
“Sir, somme me iouste151 witħ spe and shelde, | says, ‘Some joust, | |
And somme me Carol and singe gode songes, | 1992 | some sing, some play |
Some shote with dartis in the feelde, | at chess.’ | |
And somme play at Chesse amonge.” | ||
“Ye bene but foulis of gode dissporte; | ‘I will teach you | |
I wole yo tech a newe play. | 1996 | a new game,’ says |
Sitte dow here by one assorte, | Lukafer. |
‹p058› LUKAFER IS ROASTED TO CHARCOAL.
And better myrthe never ye saye.” | ||
He teyde a tredde on a pole | With a thread he | |
With an nedil ther-on I-fest, | 2000 | fastened a needle |
And ther vppo a qwi cole. | on a pole and put a | |
He bade every man blowe his blast. | burning coal upon it. | |
Duke Neymes hade a long berde, | He blew it at | |
Kinge Lucafe blewe eve to hy, | 2004 | Naymes’s beard and |
That game hade he never before lered. | burnt it. Naymes | |
He brent the he of Neymes berde to the skyne. | waxed wroth, and | |
Duke Neymes tha gan wex wrotħ, | snatching a burning | |
For he hade brente his berde so white | 2008 | [leaf 50] brand from |
To the Chymneye forth he goth | the fire he smites at | |
And caught a bronde him witħ to smyte. | Lukafer and throws | |
Witħ a goode wille he him smote, | him into the fire, | |
That both his eye breste oute. | 2012 | |
He caste him in the fire al hote; | ||
For sothe he hadde a rigħt gode cloute. | ||
And with a fyre forke he helde him doune, | ||
Tille he were rosted to colis ilkadele. | 2016 | where he was roasted |
His soule hade his god Mahou. | to charcoal. Floripas | |
Flori bade hi warme him wele. | applauds this, | |
“Sires” tho saide Floripas, | ||
“Entendith nowe al to me! | 2020 | |
This Lucafe of Baldas | ||
Was a lorde of grete mayne. | ||
My Fadir hade him euer yn che | ||
I telle you for sothe everydele, | 2024 | |
He wolde anoo aftyr him enque, | but points out their | |
And therefore loke, ye arme you we!” | danger, and advises | |
Florip wente in, as the maner was, | them to arm. At | |
To here Fadir at souper tyme. | 2028 | supper time she goes |
No man spake worde of kinge Baldas, | to her father. | |
Ner no man knewe of his sharp pyne. | ||
The xij peris armed hem wel and fyne | ||
With swerdes drawe and eg chere. | 2032 | |
While thay mery152 drinkyn the wyne |
‹p059› THE PEERS TURN THE SARACENS OUT OF THE CASTLE.
And sittinge alle at here soupe. | As they were sitting | |
Thai reheted the Sowdo and his Barons alle | at table, the twelve | |
And made orders wondir fast, | 2036 | peers rushed in and |
Thai slowe dow alle, þat were in the halle, | slew all whom they | |
And made hem wondirly sore a-gast. | met. | |
Olyvere egerly sued Laba | Laban, pursued by | |
With swerd I-drawe in his honde. | 2040 | Oliver, jumps out of |
Oute at the wyndowe lepte he þa | a window on to the | |
Vppo the salte see stronde,153 | sea-shore and escaped | |
And he skaped away fro hime, | ||
But woo was he þerfore, | 2044 | |
That he went awaye witħ ly | without injury. | |
To worche hem sorowe more. | ||
Roulande tha came rennynge | ||
And axed, where was Laban. | 2048 | |
Olyuere answerede moornynge | [leaf 51] | |
And saide, howe he was agoo. | ||
Tho thai voided the Courtes at the last | They killed all in | |
And slowe tho, that wolde a-byde, | 2052 | the castle, and then |
And drewe the brigge and teyed it fast, | drew up the bridges | |
And shitte the gatis, that were so wyde. | and shut the gates. | |
Laban, that by the ebbe escapede, | ||
Of harde, er he come to londe, | 2056 | |
He alle astonyed and a-mapide,154 | ||
For sorowe he wronge botħ his honde | ||
And made a vowe to Mahounde of myght, | Laban vowed a vow | |
He wolde that Cite wynne | 2060 | |
And never go thens by day nor nyght, | ||
For foo, for frende, ner for kynne. | ||
“And tho traytouris will I do honge, | ||
On a Galowes hye with-oute the gate; | 2064 | that he would hang |
And my Doghter, þat hore stronge, | them all and burn his | |
I-brente shal be there-ate.” | daughter. He sent to | |
To mauntryble he gan sende anoo | Mantrible for troops | |
Aftir men and tentis goode, | 2068 | and |
‹p060› THE SOUDAN BESIEGES THE CASTLE.
And Engynes to throwe witħ stoo | engines, | |
And goode armu many foolde. | ||
The sege he did leyen a-bowte | and besieged Agremore. | |
On every side of that Cite. | 2072 | |
To wallis with Engynes thai gan rowte, | ||
To breke the Toures so fre. | ||
Tho saide Flori, “lordingges goode, | Floripas recommends | |
Ye bene biseged in this toure, | 2076 | the peers |
As ye bene wight of mayne and moode, | ||
Proveth here to saue youre honou. | ||
The toure is stronge, drede yo nought, | ||
And vitayle we have plente. | 2080 | |
Charles wole not leve yo vnsougħt; | ||
Truste ye welle alle to me. | ||
Therefore go we soupe and make merye, | to enjoy themselves. | |
And takith ye alle your ease; | 2084 | |
And xxxti maydens lo here of Assyne,155 | ||
The fayrest of hem ye chese. | ||
Take your sporte, and kith yo knyghtes, | ||
Whan ye shalle haue to done; | 2088 | |
For to morowe, when the day is light, | [leaf 52] | |
Ye mooste to the wallis goo | ||
And defende this place witħ caste of stoo | ||
And with shotte of quarelles and darte. | 2092 | |
My maydyns and I sha bringe goode wone, | ||
So eueryche of us shalle bere hir parte.” | ||
On morowe the Sowdo made assaute | In the morning the | |
To hem, that were witħ-Inne, | 2096 | soudan attacks the |
And certes in hem was no defaute, | castle, | |
For of he myght thay nought wynne. | ||
Here shotte, here cast was so harde, | ||
Thay durste not nyȝhe the walle. | 2100 | |
Thay drowe hem bakwarde, | but is repulsed. | |
Thay were bete over alle. | ||
King Laba turnede to his tentes agay, |
‹p061› HE ASKS BROULAND’S ADVICE.
He was nere wode for tene, | 2104 | |
He cryede to Mahounde and Apolyne | He accuses his gods | |
And to Termagaunte, þat was so kene, | of sleepiness, and | |
And saide “ye goddes, ye slepe to longe, | shakes them to wake | |
Awake and helpe me nowe, | 2108 | up. |
Or ellis I may singe of sorowe a songe, | ||
And of mournynge right I-nowe. | ||
Wete ye not wele, that my tresoure | ||
Is alle witħ-inne the walle? | 2112 | |
Helpe me nowe, I saye therfore, | ||
Or ellis I forsake yo alle.” | ||
He made grete lamentacio, | ||
His goddis byganne to shake. | 2116 | |
Yet that comfortede his meditacio, | ||
Supposinge thay didde awake. | ||
He cleped Brenlande to aske counsaile, | ||
What was beste to done, | 2120 | |
And what thinge myght hi moste avayle, | ||
To wynne the Cite sone. | ||
“Thou wotist welle, þat alle my tresou | ||
Is there in here kepinge, | 2124 | |
And my doughter, þat stronge hore, | ||
God yif her evelle endyn!” | ||
“Sir” he saide “ye knowe welle, | [leaf 53] Brouland | |
That Toure is wondir stronge. | 2128 | tells him, as the |
While þay haue vitayle to mele, | castle is strong and | |
Kepe it thay wole fulle longe. | well stored with | |
Sende to Mauntreble, you cheif Cite, | provisions, the peers | |
That is the keye of this londe, | 2132 | will hold it very |
That no passe, where it so be, | long; | |
With-oute youre speciall sonde, | but if he would send | |
To Alagolofu, þat geaunte stronge, | orders to Alagolafre, | |
That is wardeyne of þat pas, | 2136 | the bridge-keeper at |
That no man passe that brigge alonge, | Mantrible, not to | |
But he have special grace. | allow any one to pass | |
So shalle not Charles witħ his meyne | without leave, |
‹p062› ESPIARD IS DESPATCHED TO MANTRIBLE.
Reskowe tha Agramoure. | 2140 | they would get no |
Tha thay shalle enfamyched be, | assistance from | |
That shalle hem rewe ful sore.”— | Charles, and die from | |
“Mahoundis blessynge have tho and myne, | hunger. | |
Sortybraunce, for thy rede.”— | 2144 | |
“Espyarde, messange myne, | Espiard is despatched | |
In haste thou most the spede | to Mantrible, | |
To my Cite Mavntreble, | ||
To do my message there, | 2148 | |
To Alogolof, þat giaunte orrible. | ||
Bydde him his charge wele lere, | ||
And tel him, howe that the last daye | ||
Ten fals traytours of Fraunce | 2152 | |
Passed by that same waye | ||
By his defaute witħ myschaunce, | ||
Charginge him vppo his hede to lese, | ||
That no man by the brigge,156 | 2156 | |
Be it rayne, snowe or freze, | ||
But he his heede dow ligge.” | ||
Espiarde spedde him in his waye, | ||
Tille he to Mauntrible came, | 2160 | |
To seke the geaunte, ther he laye | ||
On the banke bysyde the Dame, | ||
And saide “the worthy Sowdo, | ||
That of alle Spay is lorde and si, | 2164 | |
Vppo thy life commaundeth the anoo, | and commands the giant | |
To deserue better thyn hire. | ||
The laste day tho letist here passe | ||
Ten trattoures of douse Fraunce. | 2168 | |
God giffe the evel grace, | ||
And he also moche myschaunce! | ||
He charged the vppo life and detħ, | ||
To kepe this place sikerlye; | 2172 | |
While in thy body lastetħ the bretħ, | not to suffer any one | |
Lette noo enemye passe the-bye.” | to pass the bridge. |
‹p063› ALAGOLAFRE BARRICADES THE BRIDGE.
Alagolofur rolled his ye | ||
And smote with his axe o the stone | 2176 | |
And swore by Termagaunte and Apolyne, | ||
That ther-by shulde passen never one, | ||
But if he smote of his hede, | ||
And brought it to his lorde Laba, | 2180 | |
He wolde never ete no brede, | ||
Nere never loke more on ma. | ||
xxiiijti Cheynes he didde ouer-drawe, | Alagolafre drew 24 | |
That noo man passe mygħt, | 2184 | chains across the |
Neyther for loue nere for awe, | bridge. | |
No tyme by daye, nere by nyghte. | ||
“Go, telle my lorde, I shalle it kepe; | ||
On payne of my grete heede | 2188 | |
Shalle ther no ma goo ner crepe, | ||
But he be take or dede.” | ||
This geaunte hade a body longe | ||
And hede, like an libarde. | 2192 | |
Ther-to he was devely stronge, | ||
His skynne was blake and harde. | ||
Of Ethiope he was bore, | ||
Of the kinde of Ascopartes. | 2196 | |
He hade tuskes, like a bore, | ||
An hede, like a liberde. | ||
Laban nolde not forgete | The soudan assaults | |
The saute to renewe,157 | 2200 | the castle again, |
To wynne the Toure, he wolde not lete. | ||
Here trumpes lowde thay blewe. | ||
Every man wente to the walle, | ||
With pikeys or witħ bowe. | 2204 | [leaf 55] |
Thai made assaute generalle, | ||
The walles downe to throwe. | ||
But thay witħ-inne bare he soo, | but the 12 peers slay | |
Thay slowe of the Saresyns iij hundre. | 2208 | 300 Saracens. |
Thay wroghte hem both care and woo, |
‹p064› MAVON BATTERS THE CASTLE.
Vppo her fightinge thay wondride. | ||
Tho cryed Laba to hem on hye, | ||
“Traytours, yelde yo to me, | 2212 | Laban threatens to |
Ye shall be hongede els by and bye | hang them, and utters | |
Vppo an hye Galowe tree.” | imprecations | |
Tho spake Flori to the Sowdo | ||
And sayde “thou fals tyraunte, | 2216 | |
Were Charles come, thy pride we done | ||
Nowe, cursede myscreaunte. | against Floripas, who | |
Alas! that thou ascapediste soo | returns them. | |
By the wyndowe vppo the stronde. | 2220 | |
That thy ne hade broke a-twoo! | ||
God sende the shame and shonde!”— | ||
“A! stronge hore, god gife the sorowe! | ||
Tho[u] venemouse serpente. | 2224 | |
Withe wilde horses158 tho shalt be drawe to morowe, | ||
And on this hille be brente, | ||
That al men may be wa by the, | ||
That cursed bene of kynde. | 2228 | |
And thy love shalle honged be, | ||
His hondes bounde him byhynde.” | ||
He called forth Mavo, his Engynou, | The soudan calls for | |
And saide “I charge the, | 2232 | Mavon, his engineer, |
To throwe a magnelle to yon tou, | and orders him to | |
And breke it downe on thre.” | direct a mangonel | |
Mavon set vp his engyne | against the walls. | |
With a stoo of .vj. C wigħt, | 2236 | Mavon knocked down |
That wente as eve as eny lyne, | a piece of the | |
And smote a cornell dow right. | battlements. | |
Woo was Roulande and Olyue, | ||
That þat myschief was be-falle, | 2240 | |
And so were alle the xij peres; | Roland and Oliver | |
But Flori tha comforte hem alle: | lament; they are | |
“Sires” she saide “beitħ of goode chere! | comforted by Floripas. | |
This Toure is stronge I-nowe. | 2244 |
‹p065› MARSEDAGE IS KILLED AND BURIED.
He may cast twies or thries or he hit ayen þer,159 | [leaf 56] | |
For sothe I telle it yo.” | ||
Marsedage, the roialle kinge, | ||
Rode in riche weede, | 2248 | |
Fro Barbary commyng, | ||
Vppo a sturdy stede, | ||
Cryinge to hem vppo the walle: | ||
“Traytouris, yelde yo here! | 2252 | |
Brenne you alle ellis I shalle, | ||
By myghty god Iubyte.” | ||
Gy aspied, that he came ne, | Guy kills Marsedage | |
A darte to hime he threwe ful eve, | 2256 | the king of Barbary, |
He smote him throwe herte & liver in fe. | by throwing a dart at | |
Dame Floripe lough witħ loude steve | him. | |
And saide “Sir Gye, my loue so free, | ||
Thou kanste welle hit the prikke. | 2260 | |
He shall make no booste in his contre; | ||
God giffe him sorowe thikke!” | ||
Wha Laba herde of this myschie, | ||
A sory ma was he. | 2264 | |
He trumped, his mene to relefe; | They stop the attack | |
For to cease that tyme mente he. | ||
Mersadage, kinge of Barbarye, | ||
He did carye to his tente, | 2268 | |
And beryed him by right of Sarsenye | to bury Marsedage, | |
With brennynge fire and riche oynemente, | ||
And songe the Dirige of Alkaro, | ||
That bibill is of here laye, | 2272 | |
And wayled his deth everycho, | and bewail him 7 days | |
vij nyghtis and vij dayes. | and nights. | |
Anoo the Sowdo, south to say, | Then the soudan more | |
Sente iij hundrid of knightis, | 2276 | closely blockades the |
To kepe the brigge and the waye | castle. | |
Oute of that Castil rightis, | ||
That noo of hem shulde issue oute, |
‹p066› FLORIPAS PRODUCES A MAGIC GIRDLE.
To feche vitayle by no waye. | 2280 | |
He charged hem to wacche wel a abowte, | ||
That thay for-fameli myght dye. | ||
Thus thay kepte the place vij dayes, | [leaf 57] | |
Tille alle hire vitaile was nyȝe spente. | 2284 | The provisions being |
The yates thai pas the streyte weyes. | exhausted, | |
Tho helde thai hem with-in I-shente. | ||
Tho spake Roulande with hevy chere | ||
Woordes lamentable, | 2288 | |
Wha he saugħ the ladies so whiȝte of le, | ||
Faile brede on here table, | ||
And saide “Charles, tho curteys kinge, | Roland complains | |
Why forgetist tho vs so longe? | 2292 | of Charles’s |
This is to me a wondir thinge; | forgetfulness; | |
Me thinkitħ, thou doiste vs grete wronge, | ||
To let vs dye for faute of mete, | ||
Closed thus in a dongeo. | 2296 | |
To morowe wol we asaye what we ko gete, | ||
By god, that berithe the crow.” | ||
Tho saide Floripas “sires, drede noghte | but Floripas cheers | |
For noo houng that may befalle. | 2300 | him up, |
I knowe a medycyne in my thoughte | ||
To comforte yo witħ alle. | ||
I have a girdil in my Force, | saying she possessed | |
Who so girde he ther-with aboute, | 2304 | a magic girdle which |
Hunger ner thirste shal him neuer dere, | was a talisman | |
Though he were vij yere witħ-oute.” | against hunger and | |
“O” quod Sir Gy “my loue so trewe, | thirst for those who | |
I-blessed mote ye be! | 2308 | wore it. |
I pray yo, that ye wole us alle hit shewe, | ||
That we may haue oure saule.” | ||
She yede and set it fortħ anoo, | ||
Thai proved alle the vertue, | 2312 | They all successively |
And diden it aboute he euerycho. | put it on and felt as | |
It comforted alle both moo and fewe, | if they had feasted. | |
As thai hade bene at a feste. |
‹p067› MAPYN ENTERS FLORIPAS’ CHAMBER.
So were thay alle wele at ease, | 2316 | |
Thus were thai refresshed botħ moost & lest | ||
And weren bifore in grete disese. | ||
Laba wondred, how thai myght endu | ||
Witħ-oute vitaile so longe. | 2320 | Laban wondered at |
He remembred him on Floripas senctu, | their endurance, but | |
And of the vertue so stronge. | at last remembering | |
Tho wiste he welle, that throgħ famyne | the girdle, [leaf 58] | |
Might he he never wynne. | 2324 | |
He cleped to him fals Mapyne, | he induced Mapyne | |
For he coude many a fals gynne: | ||
He coude scale Castel and Toure | ||
And over the walles wende. | 2328 | |
“Mapyne” he saide “for my honoure, | ||
Thou mooste haue this in mynde: | ||
That hore, my doghter, a girdil hatħ she, | ||
Fro hounger it savyth he alle, | 2332 | |
That wonnen may thay never be, | ||
That foule mote hir bifalle! | ||
Kanstowe gete me that gyrdill by craft, | to attempt to steal | |
A thousande pounde tha shal I gefe the; | 2336 | it at night. |
So that it be there not lefte,160 | ||
But bringe it hithi to me. | ||
Tho kanste see by nyghte as welle | ||
As any man doth by daye. | 2340 | |
Whan thay bene in here beddes ful sti, | ||
Than go forth thider right in thy waye. | ||
Thou shalt it in here Chamber fynde, | ||
Thou maist be thereofe sure.” | 2344 | |
“Sir, there-to I wole me bynde, | ||
If my life may endure.” | ||
Fortħ wente this fals Mapyne | ||
By nyght into the Tou— | 2348 | Mapyne entered the |
God gife him evel endinge!— | chamber of Floripas | |
Euen in to Floripas bou. | through |
‹p068› MAPYN WITH THE GIRDLE IS THROWN INTO THE SEA.
By a Chemney he wente inne; | ||
Fulle stilly there he soughte it. | 2352 | a chimney; |
He it founde and girde it aboute him, | ||
And aftyr ful dere he bogħt it; | he finds the girdle | |
For by the light of a lampe the | and puts it on, | |
Floripas ga him aspye, | 2356 | but Floripas |
Alle a-frayed oute of hir slepe for fere, | perceives him | |
But lowde than gan she crye | and cries out. | |
And saide “a thefe is in my boure, | ||
Robbe me he wole or sloo.” | 2360 | |
Ther-with come Rouland fro his tou | Roland hurries to her | |
To wete of hir woo. | assistance, [leaf 59] | |
He founde Mapyne bysyde hir bedde, | ||
Stondinge amased for drede, | 2364 | |
To the wyndowe he him ladde,161 | ||
And there he smote of his hedde, | cuts off Mapine’s | |
And caste him oute in-to the see. | head, and throws | |
Of the gyrdille was he not wa; | 2368 | him out through |
But wha he wist, the girdel hade he, | the window without | |
Tho hadde he sorowe and care. | noticing the girdle. | |
Floripe to the Cheste wente | Floripas, seeing her | |
And aspyed, hire gyrdel was goo, | 2372 | girdle lost, is much |
“Alas!” she saide, “alle is it shente! | grieved; | |
Sir, what haue ye done? | ||
He hath my girdel aboute hy. | ||
Alas! þat harde while! | 2376 | |
A rebelle hounde dotħ ofte grete tene; | ||
Howe be we alle begilede.” | ||
Tho spake Roulande witħ che boolde, | ||
“Dameselle! beytħ noughte aferde! | 2380 | Roland comforts her. |
If any vitaile be aboute this hoolde, | ||
We wole hem wynne withe dinte of swerde | ||
To morowe wole wee oute-goo | They agree to attempt | |
And assaye, howe it wole it be. | 2384 | a sally to obtain |
I make a vowe to god alone, | food. |
‹p069› THE PEERS, SURPRISING THE SARACENS, OBTAIN PROVISIONS.
Assaile hem wole we! | ||
And if thay haue any mete, | ||
Parte withe he wole we. | 2388 | |
Or elles strokes thay shal gete | ||
By God and seynte Mary my avou!”162 | ||
In the morne, er the larke songe, | In the morning | |
Thai ordeynede hem to ride | 2392 | |
To the Saresyns, þat hade so longe | ||
Leyen hem besyde. | ||
Duke Neymes and Oge | Naymes and Ogier | |
Were ordeynede to kepe the place. | 2396 | remain in the castle, |
The x othir of the xij peres | the others start | |
Wente oute to assaye here grace. | ||
Thay founde hem in logges slepynge, | and surprise the | |
Of hem hade thay no thought. | 2400 | Saracens still |
Thai slowe dow þat came to honde, | sleeping in their | |
Mahounde availed hem noghte. | huts. [leaf 60] | |
In shorte tyme the ende was made, | ||
Thay ten slough iij hundred the. | 2404 | They slew 300 and |
Tho founde thai vitaile, thay were glad, | carried off as much | |
As moche as thay myghte home be. | food as they could | |
Duke Neymes and Oge, that kept the tou, | bear. | |
Say hem witħ here praye. | 2408 | |
Thai thanked god hye of honoure, | ||
That thai spedde so þat day. | ||
Thay avaled the brigge and lete him yn, | ||
Flori and here maydyns were gladde, | 2412 | |
And so were thay, that were with-yn; | ||
For alle grete hounger thay hadde. | ||
Thai ete and dronken right I-nowe | ||
And made myrtħ ever amonge. | 2416 | |
But of the Sowdo laban speke we nowe, | ||
Howe of sorowe was his songe. |
|
‹p070› THE SOUDAN IS ENRAGED WITH HIS GODS.
With vitaile in agayne, | ||
For sorowe he woxe nere wode. | The soudan is enraged, | |
He cleped Brenlande and Sortybraunce. | 2424 | |
And tolde he witħ angry mode | ||
Of his harde myschaunce. | ||
“Remedye ordeyne me, | ||
Ye be chief of my counsaile; | 2428 | |
That I of hem may vengede be, | ||
It shalle you bouth availe. | ||
O ye goddes, ye faile at nede, | ||
That I have honoured so longe, | 2432 | |
I shalle yo bre, so mote164 I spede, | and is going to burn | |
In a fayre fyre ful stronge; | his gods, | |
Shalle I neuer more on yo bileve, | ||
But renaye yo playnly alle. | 2436 | |
Ye shalle be brente this day er eve, | ||
That foule mote yo befalle!” | ||
The fire was made, the goddes were broght | ||
To have be caste the-inne. | 2440 | [leaf 61] |
Tho alle his counsaile him by-sought, | but, appeased by his | |
He shulde of þat erroure blynne, | wise men, | |
And saide “Sir, what wole ye done? | ||
Wole ye your goddis for-sake? | 2444 | |
Vengeaunce shalle tha on yo come, | ||
With sorowe, woo and wrake! | ||
Ye moste make offrynge for youre offence, | ||
For drede of grete vengeaunce, | 2448 | |
With oyle, mylke and ffrankecense | ||
By youre prestis ordynaunce.” | ||
Tho he dide bere hem in aye, | he sacrifices again, | |
And to hem made dewe offerynge. | 2452 | |
The prestis assoyled him of þat synne, | and is assoiled by | |
Ful lowly for him prayinge. | the priests. | |
Tho he cleped his counselers | ||
Brulande and Sortybraunce, | 2456 | Laban holds council. |
‹p071› THE PEERS THROW LABAN’S GOLD AT THE ASSAILANTS.
Axynge, howe he myght destroye the xij peres, | ||
That Mahounde gife hem myschaunce. | ||
Thay cowde no more ther-o, | ||
But late saile aye the toure. | 2460 | |
Witħ xxti thousande thai ga go, | ||
And bigonne a newe shoure | A new assault begins, | |
To breke dow the Walles, | ||
With mattokes and witħ pike, | 2464 | but the ditches |
Tille iiij hundred of hem alle | are filled with | |
Lay slayne in the dike. | assailants, who were | |
So stronge was the cast of stoone. | slain by the showers | |
The Saresyns drewe he abakke, | 2468 | of stones hurled down |
Tille it was at hye none; | by the peers. The | |
Tho gonne thay aye to shake. | Saracens retire. A | |
Tho fayled hem cast, þat were with-inne; | second attack ensues. | |
Tho cowde thai no rede, | 2472 | There being no stones, |
For stoone was ther noone to wynne. | ||
Tho were thay in grete drede. | ||
Than saide Florip, “beitħ not dismayde! | ||
Ye shalle be holpe anoo. | 2476 | Floripas gave |
Here is syluer vessel and now,”165 she sayde, | them her father’s | |
“That shulle ye prove goode woo.” | silver and gold to | |
She set it forth, thay caste oute faste | cast amongst the | |
Alle that came to honde. | 2480 | assailants. [leaf 62] |
Off siluer and goolde vessel thay made waste | ||
That wast166 dow vppo the sonde. | ||
Wha thai saugħ that roial sight, | ||
Thai leften alle here dede; | 2484 | |
And for the tresoure thay do fight, | ||
Who so myghte it awey lede. | The soudan in alarm | |
Tho the Sowdo wexe nere wode, | for his treasure | |
Seinge this tresoure thus dispoyle, | 2488 | gives up the assault. |
That was to him so dere and goode | ||
Laye in the dike thus defoule. | ||
He bade that thai shulde leue |
‹p072› THE SOUDAN ASKS HIS GODS’ FORGIVENESS.
And turne he agayne in haste. | 2492 | |
He wente home tille his tente than | ||
With grete sorowe and mournyn mode. | ||
To-fore his goddis wha he came, | ||
He cryed, as he were wode: | 2496 | |
“O fals goddis, that ye betħ, | He is enraged with | |
I have trustid to longe youre mode. | his gods, | |
We167 were leve to suff dede, | ||
Tha lif this life here lenger nowe. | 2500 | |
I haue almoste loste the bretħ, | ||
xij fals traytours me overe-lede, | ||
And stroyen alle þat I haue. | ||
Ye fals goddis, the devel youe spede! | 2504 | |
Ye make me nowe for to rave; | ||
Ye do fayle me at my nede.” | ||
In Ire he smote Mahounde, | and smites Mahound so | |
That was of goolde fulle rede, | 2508 | that he fell on his |
That he fille dow to the grounde, | face; | |
As he hade bene dede. | ||
Alle here bisshopes cryde oute | ||
And saide “Mahounde, thy ore!” | 2512 | |
And dow to the erthe wele lowe thay loute, | ||
Howlynge and wepynge sore, | ||
And saide “Sire Sowdo, what haue ye done? | ||
Vengeaunce shalle on the falle, | 2516 | |
But tho repente the here anone.” | ||
“Ye” quod he “I shrewe yo alle!” | but the priests | |
Thai made a fyre of franencense | induce him | |
And blewe hornes of bras, | 2520 | |
And casten in milke hony for the offence, | [leaf 63] | |
To-fore Mahoundes face. | ||
Thay counsailed Laban to knele a dow | to kneel down and ask | |
And aske forgevenes in that place. | 2524 | forgiveness. |
And so he didde and hade pardo | ||
Throgh prayere and specialle grace. |
‹p073› RICHARD STARTS ON MESSAGE TO CHARLES.
Then168 this was done, þa sayde Roulande | Meanwhile Roland | |
To his Felowes xj: | 2528 | exhorted Richard of |
“Here may we not longe holde londe, | Normandy to go on | |
By God that is in heve. | message to Charles, | |
Therefore sende we to Charles, the kinge, | that he might come | |
That he wolde reskowe vs sone; | 2532 | to their rescue. |
And certyfye him o oure strayȝte beinge, | They all would the | |
If ye thinke, it be to done. | following morning, | |
Richard of Normandye, ye most goo, | before day break, | |
I holde yo both wyse and hende. | 2536 | make an attack on |
And we shalle tomorowe, as stil as stoo, | the Saracens, and | |
The Saresyns a-wake, er ye wynde.169 | meanwhile he should | |
And while we be mooste bysy in oure werke, | steal off in the | |
And medel witħ hem alle in fere, | 2540 | darkness. In the |
Stele ye a-waye in the derke! | morning | |
And spede you faste, ye were there!” | ||
On the morowe afti the daye | ||
Thay were armede ful ryghte, | 2544 | |
Thai rode fortħ stilly in here way, | they sally out. | |
God gouerne hem, mooste of myght! | ||
Floripe and here maydyns kept the tou | Floripas and her | |
And woonde vp the brigges on hye, | 2548 | maidens draw up the |
And prayde god, to kepe here paramou, | bridges after them. | |
The Duke of Burgoyne, Sir Ge. | ||
She preyde to Rouland, er he wente, | ||
To take goode hede of hi, | 2552 | |
That he were neyþer take nere shente, | ||
As he wolde her loue wynne. | ||
On thay set with herte stronge | ||
And alle he sore afrayed. | 2556 | |
Richard the whiles away he wronge, | ||
Thile170 thai were alle dismayede. | Richard went off | |
Towarde the Mountrible he hyed him faste, | towards Mantrible. | |
To passe, if that he myghte. | 2560 | [leaf 64] |
Thedir he came at the laste. |
‹p074› GUY IS MADE PRISONER.
God kepe him for his mocħ myght! | ||
His xij171 felowes besyed he soo | The others slay many | |
That many of he thay sloughe.172 | 2564 | Saracens; |
Gye slowe the kinge of Babyloyne tho; | ||
The Babyloynes of his hors him drowe, | but Guy, overpowered | |
And with force him drowe there | by the Babylonians, | |
And bounde his hondes ful fast. | 2568 | is taken prisoner. |
A newe game thai ga him lere, | ||
For in depe priso thay him caste. | ||
But Laba wolde him first se, | ||
To wete what he was. | 2572 | |
“Telle me thy name nowe” quod he, | Laban asks his name. | |
“Thy songe shalle be ‘alas.’”— | ||
“Sire” he saide “my name is Gye, | Guy tells him. | |
I wole it never forsake. | 2576 | |
It were to me grete vilanye | ||
A othir name to take.”— | ||
“O fals traytour” quod Laba, | ||
“My doghtir, þat stronge hore, | 2580 | |
Hath me for-sake and the hath ta, | ||
Tho shalte be honged therfore.” | He is to be hanged. | |
Roulande made grete moone, | ||
It wolde noo other be. | 2584 | |
Homwarde thai ga goo, | ||
.iij.c Saresyns ther saye he, | 300 Saracens crowding | |
That kepte the pace at the brigge-ende, | near the gate of the | |
Armed wel in goode araye, | 2588 | castle, attempted to |
That thai sholde not in wende, | prevent the other | |
But be take or slay þat daye. | peers from entering. | |
Roulande to his felowes saide: | ||
“Beth alle of right gode chere! | 2592 | |
And we shal make hem alle afrayde, | ||
E we go to oure soupere.” | ||
There byganne a bykeringe bolde | A fearful struggle | |
Of x Bachelers that tyde, | 2596 | begins. |
‹p075› BRYER IS SLAIN.
Agayne iijc me I-tolde, | ||
That durste righte wel a-byde. | ||
Tho was Durnedale set a werke, | [leaf 65] | |
XL of hethen he sloughe, | 2600 | |
He spared neþe lewde ner clerke, | ||
And Floripas the-of loughe. | ||
The shotte, the caste was so stronge, | ||
Syr Bryer was slay there | 2604 | Sir Bryer is killed. |
With dartes, gauylokes and speres longe, | ||
xxti on hym there were. | ||
Roulande was woo and Olyue, | ||
Thay sloughe alle that thai mette. | 2608 | |
Tho fledde the Turkes alle for fe, | At last the Saracens | |
Thay durste no longer lette | take to flight. | |
And saide, thai we no men, | ||
But develis abroke oute of helle, | 2612 | |
“.iij. hundred of vs agay hem te. | ||
Oure lorde Mahounde hem qwelle! | ||
XL of vs here be ascaped, | ||
And hardde we be bistadde.”— | 2616 | |
“Who so wole of he more be iaped, | ||
I holde him worsse than madde.” | ||
Tho Roulande and Olyue | The peers retire | |
Made grete woo and sorowe, | 2620 | inside the castle, |
And toke the corps of Sir Bryere | taking the corpse of | |
And beryed it on the morowe. | Bryer with them. | |
Floripe asked Roulande anoone | Floripas enquires | |
“Where is my loue Sir Gye?”— | 2624 | after Guy, |
“Damesel” he saide “he is goo, | ||
And therfore woo am I.”— | and on hearing of his | |
“Alas” she saide “than am I dede, | capture, begins to | |
Nowe Gye my lorde is slay, | 2628 | lament despairingly. |
Shall I neuer more ete brede | ||
Tille that I may se hi agay.”— | ||
“Be stille” quod Roulande “and haue no ca, | Roland promises to | |
We shal hy haue ful wele. | 2632 | rescue Guy. |
‹p076› GUY IS GOING TO BE HANGED,
Tomorowe wele we thiderward fa | ||
With spere and shelde of stele. | ||
But we bringe him to this Tou— | ||
Leeve me elles no more— | 2636 | |
With victorye and grete honou, | ||
Or thay shalle abye it ful sore.” | [leaf 66] | |
On the morowe, whan tha daye was clere, | ||
Laban ordeynede Gye honged to be. | 2640 | On the following |
He cleped forth Sir Tampere | morning Laban orders | |
And badde him do make a Galowe tre, | Sir Tamper to erect | |
“And set it eve by-fore the tou, | a gallows before | |
That þilke hore may him see; | 2644 | the castle, where |
For by lord Mahounde of honou, | Floripas could see it. | |
This traitour there shalle honged be. | ||
Take withe the .iij. hundred knigħtes | ||
Of Ethiopis, Indens and Ascopartes, | 2648 | |
That bene boolde and hardy to fight | ||
With Wifles, Fauchons, Gauylokes173 and Dartes; | ||
Leste þat lurdeynes come skulkynge oute, | ||
For ever thay haue bene shrewes. | 2652 | |
Loke eche of he haue sucħ a cloute, | ||
That thay neuer ete moo Sewes.” | ||
Forth thay wente with Sir Gye, | Guy is led bound. | |
That bounde was as a thefe faste, | 2656 | |
Tille thay come the tow ful nye; | ||
Thai rered the Galowes in haste. | ||
Roulande perceyued here doynge | ||
And saide “felows, let armes174! | 2660 | Roland calls his |
I am ful gladde of here comynge, | companions to arms. | |
Hem shall not helpe her charmes.” | ||
Oute thai riden a wele gode spede, | They rush forth. | |
Thai ix towarde hem alle. | 2664 | |
Florip witħ here maydyns toke gode hede, | ||
Biholdinge over the tou walle. | ||
Thai met first witħ Sir Tampe, |
‹p077› BUT IS RESCUED BY ROLAND AND OLIVER.
God gife him evelle fyne! | 2668 | |
Such a stroke lente hym Olyue, | Oliver cuts down Sir | |
He clefe him dow to the skyne. | Tamper; Roland kills | |
Rouland bare the kinge of Ynde | a king of India, | |
Ther with his spere frome his stede. | 2672 | |
.iiij. fote it passed his bak byhynde, | ||
His herte blode þe didde he blede. | ||
He caught the stede, he was ful goode, | ||
And the swerde, þat the kinge hadde, | 2676 | takes his sword and |
And rode to Gye, there he stode, | horse, [leaf 67] and | |
And onbounde hy and bade him be gladde. | gives them to Guy, | |
And girde him witħ that goode swerde, | having unbound him. | |
And lepen vppo here stedes. | 2680 | |
“Be thou” he saide “righte nougħt a-ferde, | ||
But helpe vs wightly at this nede.” | They slay many | |
An hundred of hem sone thay slowe | Saracens, and put the | |
Of the beste of hem alle; | 2684 | rest to flight. |
The remenaunte a-way fast thay flowe, | ||
That foule motte hem byfalle! | ||
Rouland and his Felowes were glad | ||
That Gye was safe in dede. | 2688 | |
Thay thanked god, that thay175 him hadde | ||
Gyfen thaye† sucħ grace to spede. | ||
As thay wente towarde the Tou, | Retiring towards the | |
A litil bysyde the hye waye, | 2692 | castle, |
Thai saugh comynge with grete vigou | they see admiral | |
An hundred vppo a laye.176 | Costroye and | |
Costroye ther was, the Admyra, | the soudan’s | |
With vitaile grete plente, | 2696 | standard-bearer |
And the stondarte of the Sowdo Roial. | escorting a great | |
Towarde Mauntrible ride he, | convoy, destined for | |
.iiij. Chariotes I-charged witħ flessh and brede, | the sultan, across a | |
And two othe with wyne, | 2700 | field near the high |
Of divers colouris, yolowe, white and rede, | road. | |
And iiij Somers of spicery fyne. |
‹p078› THE PEERS LAY HOLD OF A CONVOY.
Tho saide Roulande to Olyue: | ||
“With these meyne moste we shifte, | 2704 | |
To haue parte of here vitailes he, | ||
For therof us nedith by my thrifte.”— | ||
“Howe, sires” he saide “god you see! | Roland calls to them | |
We pray youe for youre curtesye, | 2708 | |
Parte of your Vitaile graunte me, | to share the | |
For we may nother borowe ner bye.” | provisions with them. | |
Tho spake Cosdroye, that Admyral, | ||
“Ye gete none here for nogħt. | 2712 | Costroye refuses, |
Yf ye oght chalenge in specia, | ||
It most be dere I-boght.”— | ||
“O gentil knightes” quod Olyuere, | ||
“He is no felowe, þat wole haue alle.” | 2716 | |
“Go fortħ” quod the stondart, “tho getist noon here, | ||
Thy parte shalle be fulle smalle.”— | ||
“Forsoth” quod Roulande “and shift we wole, | [leaf 68] | |
Gete the better, who gete maye! | 2720 | |
To parte with the nedy it is gode skille, | ||
And so shalle ye by my faye.” | ||
He rode to the Admyral witħ his swerde | and is slain by | |
And gafe him suche a cloute, | 2724 | Roland. |
No wonder thogħ he were aferde, | ||
Both his eyȝe braste oute. | ||
Olyuere met withe the proude stondarde, | ||
He smote him througħ the herte. | 2728 | Oliver kills the |
That hade he for his rewarde; | standard-bearer. | |
That wounde ga sore smerte. | ||
Thai were slay, that wolde fight | ||
Er durste bikure abyde. | 2732 | |
Thai forsoke her parte anoo rigħt, | ||
It lefte alle o that o side. | ||
Forth thai drewe þat vitaile | The convoy is | |
Streight in-to the Toure. | 2736 | conveyed into the |
There was no ma durst hem assayle | castle. | |
For drede of here vigou. |
‹p079› THE SOUDAN DEFIES HIS GODS.
Floripe hem resceyved with honou | ||
And thanked Roulande fele sythe, | 2740 | Floripas thanks |
That she saugħ Gye hir paramou, | Roland for bringing | |
That wolde she him qwite and kithe. | back Sir Guy, | |
Thai ete and dronken and made hem gladde, | ||
Hem neded ther aftyr fulle sore | 2744 | |
Of suche, as god hem sente hade, | ||
I-nowe for iiij moonþes and more. | and proposes that he | |
Florip saide to Roulande than, | shall choose himself | |
“Ye moste chese you a love177 | 2748 | a mistress from |
Of alle my maydyns, white as swa.”— | amongst her maidens. | |
Quod Rouland “þat were myscheve; | But Roland refuses to | |
Oure lay wole not, þat we with youe dele, | take any that is no | |
Tille that ye Cristy be made; | 2752 | Christian. |
Ner of your play we wole not fele, | ||
For tha were we cursed in dede.” |
|
Whan he herde, howe his vitaile were nome, | ||
And howe his men were slayne, | ||
And Gye was go safe he froo, | 2760 | [leaf 69] |
He defyed Mahounde and Apolyne, | again defies his gods, | |
Iubiter, Ascarot and Alcaro also. | ||
He commaundede a fire to be digħt | and threatens to | |
With picche and Brymsto to bre. | 2764 | throw them into the |
He made a vowe with alle his mygħt, | flames. | |
“Thai shal be caste ther-Inne!” | ||
The prestes of he lawe ther-o, | ||
Thai cride oute for drede | 2768 | |
And saide “alas, what wole ye done? | ||
The worse than moste ye spede!” | ||
The Sowdo made a grete othe | ||
And swore by his hye trone, | 2772 | |
That though hem were never so lotħ, |
‹p080› RICHARD ARRIVES AT MANTRIBLE.
Thai sholde be brente Icho. | ||
Tho came the bisshope Cramadas | But bishop Cramadas | |
And kneled bifore the Sowdo, | 2776 | kneels before him and |
And charged him by the hye name Sathanas, | appeases him. | |
To saven his goddes ycho: | ||
“For if ye brenne youre goddes he, | ||
Ye wynny her maliso, | 2780 | |
Than wole no man do yo che, | ||
In feelde, Cite, ne in tow.” | ||
The Sowdo was astonyed þan | ||
And gan him sore repente | 2784 | |
Of the foly, that he byga, | ||
And els hade he be shente. | ||
A thousande of Besauntes he offred þaym to, | The soudan makes an | |
By counsail of sir Cramadas, | 2788 | offering of 1000 |
To please witħ his goddys tho, | besants to his gods. | |
For fere of harde grace. | ||
The Sowdone commaunded euery daye | ||
To assaile the tou witħ caste. | 2792 | |
But thay with-in gafe not an Eye, | ||
For thai wroghte in wast. | When Richard arrived |
|
Whan he to Mauntrible wente, | and Alagolafre | |
He founde the brigge Ichayned sore; | standing before it. | |
xxiiijti were ouere-drawe. | 2800 | [leaf 70] |
Alagolofure stode there byfore, | ||
That many a man hade slawene. | ||
Whan Richard saugħ, ther was no gate, | Determined not to | |
But by flagot the flode, | 2804 | leave his errand |
His message wolde he not lete; | unperformed, he knelt | |
His hors was botħ bigge and goode. | down and commended | |
He kneled, bisechinge god of his grace, | himself to God. A | |
To save him fro myschiefe. | 2808 | hind appears |
A white hende he saugħ anoo in þat place, |
‹p081› RICHARD CROSSES THE RIVER AND OVERTAKES CHARLES.
That swa ove the cliffe. | and swims across. | |
He blessed him in godis name | Richard follows her, | |
And folowed the same waye | 2812 | and, passing over in |
The gentil hende, þat was so tame, | safety, | |
That o þat othir side gan playe. | ||
He thanked god fele sythe, | ||
That him hade sente comforte. | 2816 | |
He hied him in his message swiþe, | hurries on to | |
To speke witħ Charles his lorde. | Charlemagne. | |
But I shalle yo telle of a traytour, | ||
That his name was called Genelyne, | 2820 | |
He counseiled Charles for his honou | Meanwhile Genelyn, | |
To turne homewarde agey. | the traitor, had | |
He saide “the xij peres bene alle dede, | advised Charles to | |
And ye spende your goode in vayne, | 2824 | retire to France, |
And therfore dotħ nowe by my rede, | because the 12 peers | |
Ye shalle see hem no more certey.” | were all slain. The | |
The kinge bileved þat he saide, | king believed him, | |
And homwarde gan he fare. | 2828 | and marched homeward, |
He of his xij Dosiperes was sore dismayed, | lamenting for his | |
His herte woxe right fulle of ca. | peers. Richard | |
Rycharde of Normandy came prikande | overtakes him, and is | |
And hertly to ride begane. | 2832 | recognised by Charles, |
Kinge Charles aspyed him comande; | ||
He commaunded to abide euery ma. | who asks him about | |
“What tidingges?” quod the kinge to Richarde, | the others. Richard | |
“Howe fare my felowes alle?” | 2836 | tells the king, how |
“My lorde” he saide “god wote, ful harde, | they are besieged | |
For thai be byseged with-in ston-walle, | within the castle, | |
Abydynge youre helpe and you socou, | and are waiting for | |
As men þat haue grete nede. | 2840 | his assistance. |
For Ihesues loue, kinge of honou, | ||
Thiderward ye yo spede!” | Charles, vowing | |
“O Genelyne” quod the kinge, | vengeance on | |
“Nowe knowe I thy treso, | 2844 | [leaf 71] Genelyn, |
I shalle the qwite, be seynte Fremounde, |
‹p082› CHARLES MARCHES TO AGREMORE.
Wha this viage is do.” | ||
The kinge turned him agey, | turned and marched to | |
And alle his Ooste him witħ, | 2848 | Agremore. |
Towarde Mountrible certeyne. | ||
And178 graunte him gree and grith! | ||
Richarde him tolde of that place, | ||
Howe stronge it was I-holde | 2852 | Richard informed him |
With a geaunte foule of face, | of the giant, who | |
The brigge hath chayned many folde; | kept the bridge, | |
The River was both depe and brode, | ||
Ther myght no ma over-ryde. | 2856 | and how he had passed |
“The last tyme that I over-rode, | the river by a | |
By myracle I passed þat tide. | miracle. | |
Therfore sir, I shal yo telle, | ||
Howe ye mote governe yo here. | 2860 | |
In yonde wode ye moste dwelle | He proposed a plan, | |
Priuely in this mane, | that 12 knights | |
And xij of vs shalle vs araye | disguised as | |
In gyse of stronge marchauntes, | 2864 | merchants, with |
And fille oure somers withe fog and haye, | ||
To passe the brigge Currauntes. | ||
We shalle be armed vnder the cote | their arms hidden | |
With goode swerdes wele I-gyrde, | 2868 | under their clothes, |
We moste paye tribute, wele I wote, | should pay the toll, | |
And elles over we may not sterte. | and the bridge being | |
But wha the chaynes be lete dow | let down, | |
Ouer ther for to passe, | 2872 | |
Than wole I, þat ye come o, | ||
In haste to that same place. | ||
Wha I see tyme for to come, | ||
Tha shalle I my horne blowe. | 2876 | should blow a horn |
Loke, ye be redy alle and some, | as a signal for the | |
For that sha ye welle knowe.” | others to approach. | |
Forth thay wente in þat araye | They start and arrive | |
To Mountrible, that Cite. | 2880 | at Mantrible. |
‹p083› THE BRIDGEWARD OF MANTRIBLE REFUSES TO LET THEM PASS.
Alagolofu to he gan seye, | Alagolafre asks | |
“Felawes, wheder wole ye?” | whither they are | |
Richarde spake to the geaunte | going. | |
And saide “towarde the Sowdo, | 2884 | Richard says, they |
With dyu[e]rs chaffe as trewe marchaunte, | are merchants on | |
We purpose for to goo, | their way to the | |
To shewen him of pellu and Gryse,179 | Soudan, | |
Orfrays of Perse Imperyalle, | 2888 | [leaf 72] |
We wole the yefe tribute of assaye | and they are willing | |
To passe by lycence in especya.” | to pay the toll. | |
“Licence gete ye noo of me,180 | Alagolafre refuses to | |
I am charged that noone sha passe, | 2892 | let them pass, and |
For x lurdeyns of Fraunce were he; | tells them about the | |
God yefe hem evell grace! | 10 knights, who had | |
Thay passed this way to Egramou; | passed there and done | |
Thay haue done the Sowdo grete tene, | 2896 | so much mischief to |
Thay have wonne his toure and his tresou, | the Soudan; | |
And yet holde thai it, I wene. | ||
Wherfo, felawes, I arest yo alle, | therefore he will | |
Tille I knowe, what þat ye bene.” | 2900 | arrest them all. |
Sire Focarde brayde oute his swerde witħ-alle, | Sir Focard draws his | |
Wel sore he gan to tene | sword and | |
And saide “fye o the Sarasyne! | ||
For alle thy grete harde hede | 2904 | |
Shaltow never drinke water ner wyne, | ||
By god! thou shalte be dede.” | ||
He smote at him witħ egre chere | smites at him. | |
But he gafe thereof right nought. | 2908 | |
“Alas” quod Richard “thou combrest vs he, | ||
By god, that me de hatħ boghte.” | ||
The cheynes yet we alle faste, | ||
The geaunte wexe nere wode, | 2912 | |
Richard blewe his horne in haste, | Richard blows his | |
That was both shrille and goode. | horn, and Charles | |
Kinge Charles hied him anoo | advances. |
‹p084› ALAGOLAFRE AND BARROCK ARE SLAIN.
Towarde the brigge so longe; | 2916 | |
The Geaunte faught with he alone, | ||
He was so harde and stronge. | ||
With a Clo of a Oke he faugħt, | Alagolafre fights | |
That was wele bound with stele. | 2920 | them with a great oak |
He slough al þat eve he raugħt, | club. | |
So stronge was his dinte to dele. | Richard seizes a bar | |
Richard raught him witħ a bar of bras, | of brass and knocks | |
That he caught at the gate. | 2924 | him down. |
He brake his legges, he cryed “alas” | ||
And felle alle che-mate. | ||
Loude tha ga he to yelle; | ||
Thay herde him yelle througħ þat Cite, | 2928 | |
Like the grete develle of helle, | ||
And saide “Mahounde, nowe helpe me!” | [leaf 73] | |
iiij men him caught the, | 4 men get hold of him | |
So hevy he was and longe, | 2932 | and throw him into |
And cast him ouer in-to the rive. | the river. | |
Chese he, whither181 he wolde swymme or gon! | They loosened the | |
Anoo thay brast the Chaynes alle, | chains; | |
That ouer the brigge were I-drawe. | 2936 | |
The Saresyns ronne to the walle, | but, the Saracens | |
Many Criste men were the I-slawe. | assembling on the | |
Than came forth Dam barro, the bolde, | walls of the city, | |
With a sithe large and kene, | 2940 | many Christians were |
And mewe a-dow as þikke as shepe in folde, | slain. Alagolafre’s | |
That came byforne hir by-dene. | wife, Barrock the | |
This Barro was a geaunesse, | giantess, comes on | |
And wife she was to Astragote, | 2944 | with her scythe and |
She did the Criste grete distresse, | mows down all whom | |
She felled downe alle þat she smote. | she meets. | |
There durst no man hire sithe abyde, | ||
She grenned like a develle of helle. | 2948 | |
Kinge Charles with a quarel þat tide | Charles dashes out | |
Smote hir, that she lowde ga yelle, | her brains, |
‹p085› CHARLES IS SHUT IN IN THE TOWN.
Euer182 the founte througħ-oute the bray; | ||
That cursede fende fille dow dede. | 2952 | |
Many a man hade she there slay, | ||
Might she never aftyr ete more brede! | ||
Charles entred in the firste warde | and with 15 knights | |
With xv knightis and no moo; | 2956 | enters the outer gate |
Of hym his oste toke no garde, | of the town, | |
He wende his oste hade entred also. | thinking his army | |
The Sarysyns ronne to the gate, | would follow him. | |
And shet it wonder faste. | 2960 | But the gate was |
Charles me come to late; | instantly closed upon | |
Tho was Charles sore agaste. | him, and his men came | |
Betwene two wardes he was shit, | too late. | |
Defende he him if he ca! | 2964 | |
The Sarysyns with him thay mette, | Charles was in great | |
Grete parel was he in tha. | danger; | |
Tho Genelyne saie, the kinge was inne | but Genelyn, seeing | |
And the yates faste I-stoke, | 2968 | him shut in, |
Ther myght no ma to him wynne, | ||
So was he faste witħ-inne I-loke, | ||
To his frendes he gan speke | ||
And saide “the kinge is dede, | 2973 | [leaf 74] exclaimed |
And alle xij peres eke. | that the king and | |
On peyne” said he “to lese myn hede, | the 12 peers were | |
Let vs hye to Fraunce warde! | dead, and proposed to | |
For I wele be crownede kinge, | 2976 | retire, as he wished |
I shalle yo alle wele rewarde, | to be king himself. | |
For I wole spare for no thinge.” | ||
Anoo thay assented to Genelyne, | ||
Thay saugh, ther was no better rede. | 2980 | |
The Frenssh me drewe he al ayene, | They are going to | |
Thay wende the kinge hade bene dedde. | return, | |
Tho Ferumbras witħ his meyne tha | but Ferumbras | |
Came for to seke the kinge, | 2984 | |
And saugh hem turne euery ma; |
‹p086› CHARLES IS RESCUED BY FERUMBRAS.
Him thought, it was a wondir thin. | ||
“Where is the kinge?” quod Ferumbras. | ||
Quod Genelyne “with-in the walle, | 2988 | |
Shaltowe neue more see his face!” | ||
“God gyf the a yvel falle! | ||
Turne agayne, tho traytoure! | calls him a traitour, | |
And helpe to reskowe thy lorde. | 2992 | |
And ye, sires, alle for you honou!” | rallies the French, | |
Thay turned agayne with that worde. | ||
Ferumbras with axe in honde, | and with his axe | |
Myghtyly brake up the gate, | 2996 | bursts open the gate. |
Ther myght laste him noo yro bonde, | ||
He hade ne-honde I-come to late. | ||
The kinge hadde fought so longe witħ-ynne, | ||
That onnethe myght he no more. | 3000 | |
Many ther were aboute him, | ||
His me were wounded ful sore. | ||
Ferumbras came with gode spede, | ||
He made the Sarasyns to fle. | 3004 | He chased the |
He reskowed the kinge at his nede, | Saracens and rescued | |
XL Sarasyns sone killed he. | the king. | |
Thai ronnen a-weye by every side, | ||
Thai durste nowhe rowte. | 3008 | |
In shorte tyme was falled her pride, | ||
Thay caught many a sore cloute. | ||
That Cite was wonne that same daye, | Mantrible is taken, | |
And every tou ther-ynne | 3012 | |
Of Mountreble, þat was so gaye, | ||
For alle he soubtile gynne, | [leaf 75] | |
Fulle of tresou and richesse, | with all its engines | |
Of Siluer and goolde and per, | 3016 | and treasures. |
And clothes of goolde, wroght of Saresynes, | ||
Of riche aray and roialte. | Richard found 2 | |
Richarde, Duke of Normandy, | children of 7 months | |
Founde ij Children of .vij. monþes oolde,183 | 3020 | old and |
‹p087› HE HURRIES ON TO AGREMORE.
xiiij fote longe we thay, | 4 feet high. | |
Thay we Barrakes sonnes so boolde; | They were sons of | |
Bygote thay we of Astragot. | Barrock, begotten by | |
Grete joye the kinge of hem hade. | 3024 | Astragot. |
Hethe thay we botħ, wele I wote, | ||
Therfore he to be cristenede he bade. | Charles caused them | |
He called þat one of hem Roulande, | to be baptized, and | |
And that other he cleped Olyue: | 3028 | called the one Roland |
“For thai shalle be myghty men of honde.” | and the other Oliver. | |
To kepe hem, he was fulle chere. | ||
Thay myght not leve, her Dam was dede; | But they soon died | |
Thai coude not kepe hem fortħ. | 3032 | |
Thai wolde neyþer ete butter nere brede, | ||
Ner no me184 was to hem worthe. | ||
He Dammes mylke they lakked the, | for want of their | |
Thay deyden for defaute of here dam. | 3036 | mother’s milk. |
Kinge Charles made hevy che, | ||
And a sory ma was than. | ||
The kinge lete ordeyne anoo, | ||
The Cite to be gouerne | 3040 | |
Of the worthyest of he ycho, | ||
That weren of wer best lerne. | ||
Duke Richarde of Normandy, | The king appoints | |
He was made chief gouernou; | 3044 | Richard governor of |
And ij C with him in hys company | the city, | |
To kepe the brigge and tou. | ||
Fortħ he rode to laba tha, | and hurries on | |
With his Ooste and Si Ferumbras. | 3048 | to Agremore with |
A spye to the Sowdo fast ran | his army and with | |
And tolde him al that cas, | Ferumbras. | |
How Charles was come with his ost, | ||
And Mountrible hade he wonne, | 3052 | |
“Alagolofur slay is for alle his bost, | ||
This game was evel bego.” | ||
Whane laban herde of his comynge, |
‹p088› FLORIPAS RECOGNISES THE FRENCH BANNER.
Him thought his herte gan breke. | 3056 | |
“Shalle I never be withoute moornynge, | [leaf 76] | |
Tille I of him be wreke.” | ||
He commaunded to blowe his Claryons | ||
To assemble alle his Ooste. | 3060 | |
His counsaile to him he lete calle | ||
And tolde, how kinge Charles was in þat coost, | Laban, being told by | |
Hadde wonne Mountrible and slay his men | a spy that his city | |
“And dishirytħ to disheryte me, | 3064 | was taken and the |
And proudely manessith me to flee, | bridge-ward killed, | |
Or drive me oute of this contre. | ||
Me mervaylythe moch of his pride. | ||
By Mahounde, moost of mygħt! | 3068 | |
Ye and my sone withe him doth ride, | ||
To the develle I hem bedigħt. | ||
But I be venget of hem both | swears to avenge him. | |
And honge he on a tree, | 3072 | |
To myghty Mahounde I make myne othe, | ||
Shalle I never Joyfulle be. | ||
Therfore I charge yo in alle wyse | He calls a council, | |
That thay be taken or slay. | 3076 | and charges his |
Thane shalle I pynne heme at my gyse | barons to take | |
And do hem alle qwike be flay.” | Charles alive that | |
On the morowe, whan it was day, | he might flay him. | |
Kinge Charles was in the felde, | 3080 | Charles approaches. |
Byfore Agremou in riche aray | ||
On stede witħ spe and sheelde. | ||
Floripe lay on the tou o hye | Floripas first | |
And knewe the bane of Fraunce. | 3084 | recognises the banner |
To Roulande she gan faste crye | of France | |
Tidynges of goode chaunce: | ||
“Kinge Charles is comen and Ferumbras, | and tells the others. | |
Here baners botħ I do see, | 3088 | |
With alle her oste yonde in þat place; | ||
Welcome to vs thay alle be.” | ||
Roulande and Olyuere |
‹p089› CHARLES DISMOUNTS LABAN AND LEADS HIM TO AGREMORE.
Arayed hem for to ride; | 3092 | Roland and all his |
And here felawes alle in fe, | companions sally | |
To Charles thay go that tyde. | forth to meet | |
Laban come forth with his mayne, | Charlemagne. Laban | |
Saresyns, that were ful felle, | 3096 | draws up all his |
Turkes, Indens, and Arabye | people | |
Ye and of the Ethiopes like the develes of helle. | ||
There were stronge wardes sette | [leaf 77] | |
By ordynaunce of dyuers batayle. | 3100 | in battle-order. |
Whan thay to geder were met, | ||
Eythir othir sore ga assayle. | ||
Ther were Saresyns al to-hewe; | The French make a | |
Roulande sloughe many one. | 3104 | great slaughter of |
Thay lay so thikke dede on rewe, | the Saracens. | |
That onneþe myghte men ride or goo. | ||
Kinge Charles met with Laba | Charles encounters | |
And bare him dow of his stede, | 3108 | the Soudan, unhorses |
He lighted dow and ceased him tha, | him, | |
He thought to qwite him his mede. | ||
He brayde oute Mowjoye wytħ gode wille | ||
And wolde have smeten of his hede, | 3112 | and would have cut |
Ferumbras prayde him to abyde stille, | ||
To cryste him, er he we dede. | off his head, but | |
The Saresyns saughe Laban take, | for Ferumbras, who | |
Thay fledde away fulle faste. | 3116 | requested that |
Lenger durste thay no maistryes make, | his father might | |
Thai were so sore agaste. | be baptized. The | |
The Criste hem chased to and fro, | Saracens, seeing | |
As a grehounde doth the hare. | 3120 | Laban a prisoner, |
.iij. c. ascaped with moche woo, | fly; but the | |
To Belmore gan thay fa. | Christians pursue | |
Kinge Charles ladde Laba | them. 300 escaped to | |
In-to Agremou Cite. | 3124 | Belmarine. Charles |
And wha þat he the came | leads Laban to | |
A ful sory man was he. | Agremore. Floripas | |
His doghter welcomed him | welcomes her father, |
‹p090› FLORIPAS BRINGS OUT THE SACRED RELICS.
With right gode che.185 | 3128 | |
He loked on hir al grymme, | but he is enraged at | |
As he wode wroth we, | seeing her. | |
And saide “fye on the, stronge hore, | ||
Mahounde confounde the!” | 3132 | |
Charles saide “here-of no more, | ||
But let us nowe mery be!”— | ||
“Sir” she saide thanne, | She then bids | |
“Welcome ye be into this tou! | 3136 | Charlemagne welcome, |
Here I presente to you, as I can, | and presents the holy | |
Relikes of grete honou, | relics to him. | |
That were at Rome I-wonne | ||
And broght into this halle. | 3140 | |
That game was evel bygonne, | ||
It sithen rewed us alle.” | [leaf 78] | |
Kinge Charles kneled adow | ||
To kisse the Relikes so goode, | 3144 | Charles kisses them, |
And badde the a oryso | and says a prayer; | |
To that lorde, þat deyde o rode. | he then thanks | |
And þanked Floripe witħ al his herte, | Floripas for her | |
That she hade saued his meyne | 3148 | assistance to his |
And holpe hem oute of peynes smerte | knights, and for | |
And kepte the Relekes so fre. | having preserved the | |
Kinge Charles did calle bisshope Turpy | precious relics. He | |
And bade him ordeyne a grete fat, | 3152 | orders Turpin to |
To baptyse the Sowdo yne; | prepare a vessel, | |
“And loke what he shalle hat. | wherein to baptize | |
Unarme him faste and bringe him ne, | the Soudan | |
I shal his godfader be. | 3156 | |
Fille it fulle of wate cle, | ||
For Baptysed shalle he be. | ||
Make him naked as a Childe, | ||
He moste plunge ther-inne. | 3160 | |
For now most he be meke and mylde, | and to wash off his | |
And I-wassh awaye his synne.” | sin in the water. |
‹p091› LABAN IS SLAIN, AND FLORIPAS WEDDED TO GUY.
Turpyn toke him by the honde | Turpin leads Laban to | |
And ladde him to the fonte. | 3164 | the font, |
He smote the bisshope witħ a bronde | but the Soudan | |
And gaf him an evel bronte. | strikes at him, | |
He spitted in the water cle | spits on the vessel, | |
And cryed oute on hem alle, | 3168 | utters invectives |
And defied alle þat criste we. | against all | |
That foule mote him by-falle! | Christians, | |
“Ye and tho, hore serpentyne, | ||
And that fals cursed Ferumbras, | 3172 | and curses Ferumbras. |
Mahounde gyfe hem botħ evel endyn, | ||
And almyghty Sathanas! | ||
By you came all my sorowe, | ||
And al my tresure for-lorne. | 3176 | |
Honged be ye both er tomorowe! | ||
In cursed tyme were ye bor.” | ||
Ferumbras saide to the kinge, | ||
“Sir, ye see, it wole not be, | 3180 | |
Lete him take his endynge, | ||
For he loueth not Cristyante.” | ||
“Duke Neymes” quod Charles tho, | Charles commands | |
“Loke þat execucio be do, | 3184 | Naymes to cut off his |
Smyte of his hedde! god gyfe him woo! | head. [leaf 79] | |
And goo we to mete anoone.” | ||
It was done as the kinge commaunde, | He is executed; his | |
His soule was fet to helle, | 3188 | soul goes to hell, |
To daunse in þat sory lande | there to dance with | |
With develes, þat we ful felle. | devils. | |
Dame Florip was Baptysed tha | ||
And here maydyns alle, | 3192 | Floripas was baptized |
And to Sir Gye I-maryed. | with all her maidens, | |
The Barons honoured hir alle. | and wedded to Guy. | |
Alle the londe of Spayne | Charles divided Spain | |
Kinge Charles gyfe he two, | 3196 | between Guy and |
To departe bitwyxt hem twayne, | Ferumbras, | |
Ferumbras and G also. |
‹p092› CHARLES RETURNS TO FRANCE.
And so thay livede in ioye and game, | ||
And brether both thay we, | 3200 | |
In pees and wer both I-same, | ||
The durste no ma hem de. | ||
Kinge Charles turned home agay | ||
Towarde his contre, | 3204 | |
He charged Sir Brye of Bretayne | and charges Sir Bryer | |
His tresoure for to be: | of Bretayne to take | |
To kepe the Relikes of grete pris | care of the relics, | |
And his other tresou, | 3208 | and to bring all his |
And bringe hem safe to Parys, | treasure to Paris. | |
There to a-bide in store. | ||
He saide “farewell, Sir Ferumbras, | ||
Ye and Gye, my dere frende! | 3212 | After taking leave of |
And thy wyf Dame Floripas! | Guy and Floripas, | |
For to Fraunce nowe wole I wende. | ||
Be ye togeder as breth[e]r botħ! | ||
No ma ye neditħ to drede, | 3216 | |
Be ye nevere to-gedere wrotħ, | ||
But eyther helpe othir at his nede. | ||
Vysityth me, wha ye haue space; | ||
In-to Fraunce makitħ your disporte, | 3220 | |
God wole you sende the better grace, | ||
In age to do me comforte.” | ||
Thai toke leve of the kinge, | ||
With ful hevy che, | 3224 | |
And turned agay botħ mornynge, | ||
With wepynge water cle. | ||
Kinge Charles with the victory | he sails to Mounpeler, | |
Sailed to Mounpeleres, | 3228 | |
And thanked almyghty god in glorye, | [leaf 80] where he | |
That he hade saued his Dosiperes, | thanks God for the | |
And fende him of the Saresynes | victory, | |
The hyer honde to have, | 3232 | |
For alle here strenghe186 and he Engynes |
‹p093› GENELYN IS HANGED AT PARIS.
The Relikes of Rome to saue. | and for the relics. | |
At oure lady of Parys | He presents the | |
He offred the Crosse so fre; | 3236 | cross to Paris, the |
The Crow he offred at seynte Denyse, | Crown to St. Denis, | |
At Boloyne the nayles thre. | the three nails to | |
Alle his Barons of him we gladd, | Boulogne. | |
Thai gafe him grete presente. | 3240 | |
For he so wele hade I-spedde, | ||
Thay did him grete reuerence. | Charles well | |
The kinge hade wel in mynde | remembered the | |
The tresone of Genelyne, | 3244 | treachery of Genelyn, |
Anoo for him he dide sende | ||
To yefe him an evel fyne: | ||
“Thou traitour unkynde” quod the kynge, | ||
“Remembrist tho not how ofte | 3248 | |
Thou hast me betrayed, þou fals Genelyne? | ||
Therfore thoue shalt be honged on lofte!— | ||
Loke that the execucio be do, | ||
That throgh Parys he be drawe, | 3252 | and ordered him to be |
And honged on hye on mount Fawco, | drawn and hanged at | |
As longeth to traytoures by lawe; | Montfaucon in Paris. | |
That alle men shall take hede, | ||
What deth traytourys sha fele, | 3256 | |
That assente to such falshede, | ||
Howe the wynde here bodyes shal kele.” | Thus Charles | |
Thus Charles conquered Laba, | conquered the Soudan | |
The Sowdo of Babyloyne, | 3260 | of Babylone. |
That riche Rome stroyed and wa | ||
And alle the brode londe of Spay. | ||
187 . . . . . .[an]d of his Barons | ||
. . . . . . .[hi]s pride | 3264 | |
. . . . . . . .eligons | ||
. . . . . . . .þat tyde | ||
. . . . . . .on Charles soule | ||
. . . . . . .s also | 3268 |
‹p094› CONCLUSION.
. . . . . . .Peter and Poule | ||
God lete hem never wete of woo! | [leaf 81] | |
But brynge here soules to goode reste! | ||
That were so worthy in dede. | 3272 | |
And gyf vs ioye of the beste, | God give joy to all | |
That of here gestes rede! | who read this romance. |
Here endithe the Romaunce of the Sowdon of Babyloyne and of Ferumbras his sone who conquerede Rome, And Kynge Charles off Fraunce withe xij. Dosyperes toke the Sowdon in the feelde And smote of his heede.
89 Read: myghtes
90 MS. dōō
91 leaf worn.
92–† See the note.
93 See the note.
94 or Ar
95 See the note.
96 See the note.
97 looks like hound.
98 Read ‘wide’
99 sic.? assaute.
100 MS. Ml
101 This line in a much later hand.
102 Read: were ordeyned
103 Estragote
104 Read: reste
105 See the note.
106 MS. Oost corrected to Cost.
107 Read: a ras.
108 See the note.
109 Read: We
110 MS. Berumbras.
111 See the note.
112 Read: ‘without faile.’
113 See the note.
114 Read: ‘a ras.’
115 MS. met.
116 See the note.
117 MS. is rubbed, but it looks more like welawai.
118 Read: ‘reliqes.’
119 A modern hand has written in the margin “Mount.”
120 See the note.
121 Insert: ‘gan.’
122 Read: ‘sone.’
123 Read: ‘lefe.’
124 Read: ‘as thenketh.’
125 Blank in MS. See the note.
126 MS. deistowe.
127 Read: ‘free.’
128 MS. ensuce.
129 See the note.
130–† See the note.
131 Probably an error for ‘half.’
132 In the margin the Scribe adds:—‘The merci Ladi helpe.’
133 See the note.
134 Read: ‘soghten.’
135–† See the note.
136 Read: ‘caughte.’
137 Ascopartes.
138 Miswritten for ‘bounden.’
139 ‘was.’
140 Read: ‘dirke.’
141 Read: ‘mente.’
142 Read: ‘trew.’
143 Read: ‘harme & skathe.’
144 See the note.
145 Sic in MS. Query—‘charge.’
146 Read: ‘byleven.’
147 Read: ‘reliqes.’
148 Read: ‘I dyne.’ See the note.
149 Sic in MS. Read: ‘ye.’
150–† These two lines are written as one in the MS.
151 MS. .
152 Miswritten for ‘were’?
153 MS. strowde.
154 Read: ‘a-wapide.’
155 Read: ‘Assye.’
156 See the note.
157 These two lines are written as one in the MS.
158 See the note.
159 See the note.
160 Read: ‘lafte.’
161 See the note.
162 See the note.
163 See the note.
164 MS. mete.
165 ? I now.
166 Read: ‘went.’
167 ? Me.
168 ? ‘When.’
169 Read: ‘wende.’
170 ? ‘while.’
171 ? xj.
172 See the note.
173 MS. Gamylokes.
174 Read: ‘as armes.’
175-† See the note.
176 MS. ‘alaye.’ See the note.
177 Read: ‘leve.’
178 Read: ‘God.’
179 Read: ‘gray.’
180 See the note.
181 ? ‘whether.’
182 Read ‘over.’
183 See the note.
184 Read: ‘mete.’
185 These two lines are written as one in the MS.
186 Read: ‘strengthe’
187 A corner of the leaf torn off.
Page 1, line 1. myghteste, evidently an error of the scribe for myghtes, cf. ll. 1635, 1312, 3068, 2546, 1200, 2059; and Syr Ferumbras, l. 2719.
“Nov help hem þe heȝ kyng of hevene,
Þat art of miȝtes most.”
God in glorie occurs again in l. 3229; cf. the French expression Damedeu de glore; Fierabras 2332.
p. 1, l. 2. made and wroght in l. 5 are the 2nd person sing. preterite, which in all other instances in this poem ends in -est. But perhaps we might suppose a change of person here, and regard made and wroght as the third person. For examples of the change of person see Syr Ferumbras, ll. 2719, 4393, and Guy of Warwick, ed. Zupitza, l. 2324.
p. 1, l. 7. shulde to love; to before an infinitive, governed by an auxiliary verb, is pretty common in Middle English works. See Zupitza’s note to Guy, 1925.
p. 1, l. 9. ȝyfe. This is the only instance of ȝ being written in the present poem at the beginning of a word. ȝife is written if in all other passages of the poem, cf. ll. 550, 651, 763, and 1061, etc. As to the pronunciation of ȝ in the middle of a word, it is doubtful, whether it had still preserved its ancient guttural sound, or not, as the same words are written sometimes with it and sometimes without it, and are often made to rhyme with words in which ȝ or gh would be etymologically incorrect; e. g. nye, which is spelt nyȝe in l. 2284, rhymes with Gye, in l. 2657. We even find whiȝte, in l. 2289, instead of white (l. 2008: smyte). At the end of a word ȝ has the sound of s.
p. 1, l. 13. idoone. The prefix i-, O.E. ge-, sometimes occurs in this poem, but more frequently it is not written; see Introduction, p. xxxviii.
p. 1, l. 14. cf. l. 2516.—ll. 1–14 may be said to contain the moral of the whole poem, which we know the romance writers to be very fond of placing at the beginning of their works. “La moralité de tout un poème,” says Léon Gautier, in his Epopées Françaises, I. 233, “est quelquefois exprimée dans ses premiers vers.” ‹p096›
p. 1, l. 16. moch = much (as in l. 754) is the usual spelling in this poem. We likewise find meche, l. 179, and mikille, l. 1016.
p. 1, l. 19, his refers to Rome.
p. 1, l. 22. Laban, the father of Ferumbras, is styled sowdan only in this poem, and once in the Destruction de Rome, l. 1436:
“Les noveles en vindrent al soldan diffaié.”
The French, the Provençal and the English version of Sir Ferumbras all agree to call him amyral or amirans.
p. 1, l. 24. The mention of King Louis and of the abbey of St. Denis (l. 27) seems to be an imitation of the Destruction, l. 7 et seq.:
“Le chanchon est perdue et le rime fausee,
Mais . . li rois Louis, dont l’alme est trespassee
—Ke li fache pardon la verge honoree—
Par lui et par Gautier est l’estoire aunee
Et le chanchon drescie, esprise et alumee
A saint Dynis de France premierement trovee.”
St. Denis also occurs in the beginning of the French Fierabras, l. 4:
“A Saint Denis en France fu li raules trouvés.”
Cf. besides note to l. 26. witnessith = attests, testifies; cf. Stratmann, p. 645. It occurs again in l. 1489.
p. 2, l. 25. Romaunce, the French or Romance language. We often find the authors of romances, both of translations and of imitations from the French, referring to the original; cf. Syr Eglamour of Artoys, sign. E i:
“His own mother there he wedde,
In Romaunce as we rede.”
Again, fol. ult.: “In Romaunce this cronycle is.”
[Quoted by Warton, History of English Poetry, II. 146, footnote.]
p. 2, l. 26. bokes of antiquyte. This is to be regarded as one of those frequent assertions of the authors of these poems, who in order to give more credit to their tales, thought it necessary to affirm their antiquity and celebrity in old times. Cf. Gautier, Epop. Fr., II. 87: “Il fut de bon ton d’annoncer, au commencement de chaque poème, qu’on avait trouvé la matière de ce poème dans quelque vieux manuscrit latin, dans quelque vieille chronique d’abbaye, surtout dans les manuscrits et dans les chroniques de Saint-Denis. On se donnait par là un beau vernis de véracité historique. Plus les trouvèrent ajoutaient aux chansons primitives d’affabulations ridicules, plus ils s’écriaient: ‘Nous avons trouvé tout cela dans un vieux livre.’”
p. 2, l. 27. Seinte Denyse is the genitive depending on abbey.
p. 2, l. 28. there as = where, or where that. See Koch, Englische Grammatik, II. § 511.
p. 2, l. 29. Laban. So the father of Ferumbras is called in the Destruction de Rome, where only in six passages (ll. 891, 899, 1116, 1194, 1174, 981) we find the form Balan, which is the only one used in the French Fierabras, in the Provençal version, and in the English ‹p097› Syr Ferumbras.—of hie degre; this kind of expletive occurs again in l. 100: clerk of hie degre; cf. also l. 168: king of hie honour.
p. 2, l. 31. Cristiante = the company of Christians, the countries inhabited by Christians, cf. ll. 235, 374. It signifies “the religion taught by Christ” in l. 3182. Cristiante and Christendom are used promiscuously in Middle English writers.
p. 2, l. 33. Agremare : there. The rhyme becomes perfect by reading Agremore : thore, which we find in l. 1805; cf. also l. 1003 Agremore : more (i. e. negro), and ll. 672, 775, 2140, 2895.
p. 2, l. 34. Flagot. See Index of Names, s. v. Flagot, and cf. note to l. 1723.
p. 2, l. 37. This line is too long, nevertheless it seems to be correct as it stands, clearly imitated from several passages of the Destruction de Rome.
l. 420. | “Ensamble ou li issirent xv roi corone. Et xiiii amaceours . .” |
l. 1155. | “Bien i ad xxx rois et xiiii amaceours.” |
l. 689. | “xxx roi sont ou li et xiiii amaceours.” |
l. 163. | “Et xiiii amaceours.” |
p. 2, l. 41. hit instead of it is found again in l. 2309; in all the other instances it is spelt as in modern English.
p. 2, l. 42. pryke, to spur a horse, to excite, to spur or to stimulate. It is O.E. prician, which occurs in Ælfric’s Grammar, ed. Zupitza, p. 174 (pungo = ic pricige). This and the following line are imitated from Chaucer; cf. C.T. Prologue, ll. 10, 11, and see Introduction, p. xlvi. Kynde = naturalis, ingenuus; kynde wit = common sense. Kynde is O.E. cynde (Modern English kind).
p. 2, l. 73. frith means “forest,” or more correctly “enclosed wood.” The original sense of forest is “unenclosed wood” (see Diez, Etymol. Wörterbuch, I. 185). Stratmann, Dict. p. 228, s. v. frið, seems to be right in connecting frith with O.E. frið, freoðo = pax, tutela, saeptum. Morris, Allit. Poems, Glossary, derives it from the Gaelic frith. “frith is still used in Provincial English, meaning unused pasture-land, brushwood” (Halliwell).
p. 2, l. 45. yȝe (O.E. êagum) : flye (O.E. flêogan). With regard to the power of ȝ, see the note to l. 9, and cf. the spelling eyen in ll. 826, 1302, 2012.
p. 2, l. 46. tre may be singular (O.E. trêowe) as well as plural (O.E. trêowum).
p. 2, l. 49. The following lines (49–53) correspond with ll. 94–100 of the Destruction, which run as follows:
“Li admirals d’Espaigne s’est ales desporter
As puis sur Aigremore, avec li. M. Escler;
La fist ses ours salvages a ses hommes berser.
La veissies meint viautre, maint brachet descoupler,
Payens et Ascopars as espees jouer,
Coure par le marine et chacier maint sengler,
Maint ostour veisies et maint falcon voler.”
p. 2, l. 50. shope, literally “shaped:” he shope him, “he got himself ready, he planned, devised, intended.” The phrase is of frequent occurrence in Chaucer.
p. 2, l. 52. bawson, badger. For the use of badgers, see Skeat’s note to Specimens of English Literature, p. 383.
p. 2, l. 56. Alaunts, a kind of large dogs of great strength and courage, used for hunting the wolf, the bear, the boar, &c. Cf.
“Aboute his chare wente white alauntz
Twenty and mo, as grete as any stere,
To hunte at the lyoun or at the bere.”
Chaucer, ed. Morris, II. 66/1290.
According to Diez (Etymol. Wörterb., I. 12, s. v. “alano”) alaunts means “Albanian dogs.” Lymmeris, “blood-hounds.” Halliwell quotes the following passage: “A dogge engendred betwene an hounde and a mastyve, called a lymmer or a mongrell.” Lymmer is the French limier, O.Fr. liemier, which etymologically means a dog that a courser leads by a lime, i. e. a thong or leash. Lime is the same word as French lien, a leash; Latin ligamen. Lymmer is preserved in Modern English limer, a “lime-hound.”
p. 2, l. 56. Rache and brache are both retained in the modern speech; rache seems to be particularly used in Scotland. “Brache is said to signify originally a bitch hound—the feminine of rache, a foot-scenting dog” (Morris, Gawayne, Gloss. p. 89). Rache is, according to Stratmann, O.Icel. rakki; brache is O.Fr. braque, M.H.Ger. braccho. Cf. also Halliwell’s Dict. s. v. “brach.” The French racaille is etymologically connected with rache; see Diez, Etym. Wörterb., II. 407.
p. 2, l. 57. commaunde for commaunded (l. 228), formed on the same analogy as comforte (l. 2242) for comforted (ll. 312, 2117), aliȝt for alighted; gerde for girded; graunte (l. 607) for graunted, etc.
p. 2, l. 59. fere, O.E. fran (Mod. Eng. fear), is an active verb, meaning “to frighten, to terrify.” It is still found in this sense in Shakespeare.—launde : commaunde. The very same rhyme occurs again in l. 3189, where launde is spelt lande. The rhyme need not cause any difficulty, cf. Guy, p. xi. κ. Or must launde be taken here for lande = saltus? Cf. Morris, Gloss. to Allit. Poems, s. v. launde.
p. 3, l. 62. set, means “seat, sedes”; O.Icel. set, O.H.G. sez, M.H.G. sitz. This stanza as it stands seems to be incorrect, there being no rhyme to sete; possibly a line has been lost after l. 63.
p. 3, l. 67. The subject of the sentence is wanting. For more instances see Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 10. It is to be observed that for the most part the subject wanting is of the same person as the object of the preceding sentence.—he was god and trew of divers langages = “he well knew, understood them perfectly.”
p. 3, l. 68. dromonde : poundis. Read dromounde (which occurs l. 125): pounde (see l. 2336). ‹p099›
p. 3, l. 69. We find fro and from in this poem. Both belong to the Midland dialect. Fro is confirmed by the rhyme fro : so (l. 2760). It is derived from the Scandinavian fra; Mod. Eng. has retained it in “froward,” and in the phrase “to and fro.” The same word enters as a prefix into composition in O.E. compounds, as fr-ettan, etc. Babyloyne, the author pronounced Babyloyne as well as Babylone (either rhyming, cf. ll. 30, 3260).
p. 3, l. 74. qweynte, “famous, excellent,” cf. Skeat, Etymol. Dict. p. 482, s. v. quaint. for the nones, “for the nonce, for the occasion.” Cf. Zupitza’s note to Guy, 612; it is often used as a kind of expletive.
p. 3, l. 75. to presente you. The Destruction de Rome has: “vous quidai presenter.”
p. 3, l. 76. French: “Uns vens nous fist à Rome parmi le far sigler.” Destr. l. 120.
p. 3, l. 77. Cf. Destr. ll. 115–16. See Introduction, p. xxiii.
p. 3, l. 78. About the rhyme Rome : one, see Introduction, p. xliii.
p. 3, l. 79. bygone, “afflicted, pressed hard;” literally it means, “overrun, covered.” Cf. Shakespeare, Julius Caesar:
“Even such a one,
So pale, so spiritless, and woe-begone.”
p. 3, l. 82. vilane : remedye. Read vilanye, as in l. 2577, where it rhymes with Gye, see Introduction, p. xliv, and Ellis, Pronunciation, I. 271.
p. 3, l. 83. colde, used here and in l. 91 in nearly the same sense as in the expressions collected by Zupitza, in his note to Guy, 1149.
p. 3, l. 84. tithynge. So with th in ll. 1787, 714, 783; in ll. 65, 91, 149, 324, etc., we read tidinge. There are several instances where d and th in the middle of a word seem to be promiscuously used in this poem; as hithire l. 1265, hider 1869 (cf. also dogdir 2580, and doghter 96, 124, etc.).
p. 3, l. 86. Mahounde, Appolyn and Termagant are the principal deities (cf. ll. 2105, 2177, 2761) of the Mahometans, who were considered as pagans = payens (ll. 535, 1040) or paynym (ll. 539, 866, etc.). Other idols of the Saracens are mentioned in ll. 2761–2 of the Sowdone. Compare also Gautier’s note to l. 8, of his Edition critique de la Chanson de Roland, and Skeat, Prioress’s Tale (Clarendon P.S.), 161/2000.
p. 3, l. 88. theyme instead of hem occurs only three times in the poem (ll. 88, 1237, 2787). There must be some corruption here, as there is no rhyme to theym. The last stanza ends at l. 87, and the next one begins at l. 89. As far as the sense is concerned we could easily do without this line; it ought perhaps to be regarded as spurious.
p. 3, l. 93. Ferumbras is spelt differently in the different versions of the romance. In the Sowdan we always find Ferumbras, in the Ashmole MS. Ferumbras and Fyrumbras. He is called Fierabras in the French ‹p100› Ferabras in the Provençal version; the Destruction has Fierabras, but more frequently Fierenbras. In Caxton’s Life of Charles the Great his name is Fyerabras, Skelton has Pherumbras, Lyndsay Pharambras, and in Barbour’s Bruce we read Ferambrace; see Introduction, pp. xxv and xxxii.
p. 4, l. 99. Oliborn. This name does not occur in any other version of this poem. The same is the case with regard to Espiard, l. 103. None of the French versions gives any name to the Soudan’s messenger. In the Ashmole MS. l. 3823, the messenger is called Malyngryas.
p. 4, l. 102. Assye = Asia. This name does not occur in the other versions of the poem; cf. note to l. 1000.
p. 4, l. 103. Cf. the Destruction, l. 202:
“Par tote la terre sont li baron mande”
ferre and nere, cf. ll. 117, 996, and the note to l. 528 of Syr Ferumbras.
p. 4, l. 104. frike, “quick, bold,” O.E. frec. See Stratmann, Dictionary, p. 225.
p. 4, l. 108. Þon. Compare Introduction, p. xxxvii.
p. 4, l. 109. The passage is not clear. Perhaps there is some corruption here and we ought to read: anon rowte, “assembled quickly, immediately”; rowte would then be the preterite formed on the analogy of lighte, graunte, commaunde, etc. See Introduction, p. xxxviii.
p. 4, l. 110. Destruction, l. 217:
“Par C fois M payen.”
p. 4, l. 112. douȝte : route. See Introduction, p. xliv, and note to l. 9.
p. 4, l. 113. Lucafer is the name of the Saracen King in all the versions of this romance but in the French one, where with the single exception of one passage (l. 2242 Lucafer), he is always called Lucifer, cf. Introd. p. xx.
p. 4, l. 114. lorde and governoure. This repetition of the same idea by two synonymous words, the one of English and the other of French origin, is very common in M.E. writers. Thus we read in this poem, l. 2164 lorde and sire, l. 225 serchid and sought, ll. 3199, 1936 joye and game, l. 742 wel and fine.
p. 4, l. 118. A carrik was a kind of large ship, called caraca in Italian, carraca in Spanish and Portuguese, carraque in French, kraecke in Dutch. The etymology is not clear. See Diez, Etymol. Wörterb., I. 112. Halliwell has ‘carrack, a Spanish galleon. Sometimes English vessels of great value and size were so called.’
p. 4, l. 119. Destruction, l. 385:
“Par vii fois sont C mil, si l’estoire ne ment.”
p. 4, l. 124. his faire daughter Floripas. Floripas is described as follows in the Destruction, ll. 252–262:
“Aitant es vous la bele ou il n’out qu’enseignier
Vestue d’un diapre, onke ne vi tant chier, ‹p101›
Ses crins sur ses epaules plus lusoient d’or mier,
Sa char out bele et blanke plus que noifs en fevrier,
Les oes avoit plus noirs que falcon montenier,
Et le colour vermaile con rose de rosier,
La bouche bien seant et douce pour baisier,
Et les levres vermailes come flour de peskier;
Les mameles out dures com pomme de pomnier,
Plus sont blanches que noifs que chiet apres fevrier;
Nuls hom ne porroit ja sa grant bealte preisier.”
Compare also the French Fierabras, ll. 2007, et seq.
p. 4, l. 128. This line is clearly imitated from the Destruction, ll. 331–2:
“En sa main .i. baston que contremont bailie,
Et manace François pour faire les loye.”
Cf. Introduction, p. xxiii.
p. 5, l. 131. breddes, “birds”; l and r very often change their place in a word. Thus we find worlde and wrolde, crafti and carfti, etc.
p. 5, l. 132. sowdon and sowdan are used promiscuously in the rhymes.
p. 5, l. 146. Destruction, ll. 445–6:
“N’i remeigne chastels, dongeons ne fermete
Moustiers ne abbeie que ne soit embrase.”
p. 5, l. 150. Compare the Destruction, ll. 503–4:
“L’apostoile de Rome ad la novele oie
Ke payen sont venu els plains de Romanie.”
p. 5, l. 157. unknowne makes no sense. Perhaps we ought to read yknowne or not unknowne. In the Destruction, ll. 509–513—
“Seignours, ke le feromes, franke gent segnorie?
Li admirals d’Espaigne a no terre seisie;
Il en ont ja gastee une moult grant partie:
Au bref terme serra ceste terre exillie;
Qui bon consail saura vienge avant si nous die.”
p. 5, l. 160. unneth, O.E. unêaðe, “uneasily, scarcely.” Chaucer has unnethë, the final e being almost always sounded. See Introduction, p. xxxix.
p. 5, l. 163. gydoure evidently means “guide, conductor, commander.”
p. 5, l. 164. houne = hounde. On the elition of final d, see Skeat, Specimens of Early English, 320/261, and Preface to Havelok, p. xxxvii.
p. 5, l. 165. Ifreȝ. There is no person of this name in any other version. Perhaps this Ifres may be identical with Jeffroi, mentioned as a senator of Rome in the Destruction (ll. 1122, 1139, 1367).
p. 6, l. 170. About the phrase “douce France” compare Léon Gautier’s note to l. 15 of his Edition critique de la Chanson de Roland.
p. 6, l. 171. Savaris. The author has found this name in the Destruction, l. 540.
p. 6, l. 173. Kinge : thinge. In my dissertation on the language and the sources of the Sowdan of Babylon, p. 4, bottom, I have shown ‹p102› that i or y, which corresponds to O.E. y, the umlaut of u, rhymed with original i in this poem, which proves that the author wrote in the East Midland dialect. But among the examples collected there (p. 5), I ought not to have cited kinge, because this word is not peculiar to the East Midland speech, but occurs with the same form in all dialects. See Introduction, p. xxxv.
p. 6, ll. 175–6 are imitated from the Destruction, ll. 546–7. See Introduction, p. xxiii.
p. 6, l. 176. ner, the common form for nor (267, 1633) in this poem. “Polaynes are knee-pieces in a suit of armour. This term for genouilleres is found in the household book of Edward I.” (Morris, Glossary on Sir Gawayne, s. v. polaynes).
p. 6, l. 181. tyte, “soon, quick.” The editor of the Roxburghe Club edition of the Sowdan curiously confounds tyte with tightly = “adroitly,” occurring in Shakespeare, Merry Wives, I. 3. Tyte is derived from O.Icel. tîðr, “creber,” the neuter of which tîtt, used adverbially means “crebro, celeriter.” See Stratmann, p. 561, s. v. tîd.
p. 6, l. 189. Chek = “cotton, linen or woollen cloths, woven or printed in checkers.” (Latham, Dictionary, 1876.)
p. 6, l. 191. A line seems to be wanting here. There is no rhyme to displayed.
p. 6, l. 201. randon, “rapidity, force.” About the etymology see Diez, Etym. Wörterbuch, I. 342, and Skeat, Etym. Dict.
p. 7, l. 202. than seems to be an error for thay.
p. 7, l. 214. Sarysyns. There are several spellings of the name of this people in the poem: Sarsyns, Sarsenys, Sarisyns, Sarasyns.
p. 7, l. 222. that day occurs again in l. 223. The author probably only wrote it once; the repetition is most likely due to the scribe.
p. 7, l. 224. The following lines are imitated from the Destruction, ll. 613–619; see Introduction, p. xxiii.
p. 7, l. 228. The French text (Destruction, l. 624) has:
“Maintenant soient tot occis et descoupe.
Ne voil que mi serjant en soient encombre.”
p. 8, l. 247. The original meaning of brayde is “start, blow,” but this makes no sense here, nor can it mean “a boast,” as the editor of the Roxburghe Club edition explains it. But Mid. Eng. brayde, as well as O.E. brægd or bregd, often signifies “deceit, craft, a cunning trick, a fraudulous contrivance, a stratagem or artifice.” See Mätzner’s Wörterb. and Halliwell’s Dict. This, I think, is also the meaning of brayde in l. 247. Floripas has been engaged to Lukafer who had promised the Soudan, her father, to bring the emperor Charlemagne and all his twelve peers to the foot of his throne, in return for the hand of his daughter. Floripas, not at all enamoured of the king of Baldas, but obeying the will of her father, said she would only agree to ‹p103› accept him when he had fulfilled these conditions. But she does not believe that Laban thinks of ever fulfilling them, she is persuaded that those words, those promises made by Laban, are only a brayde, i. e. a stratagem or artifice devised by him in the hope of winning her hand before the performance of his promise. This signification of braide has been retained in the Mod. Eng. adjective braid, “crafty, deceitful.”
p. 8, l. 257. The Ethiopes, “Ethiopians,” are not mentioned in the other versions of this romance. On the rhyme Aufricanes : stones cf. Introduction, p. xxxv.
p. 9, l. 278. Destruction, l. 908:
“Sortibrans a mande Mabon l’engineor.”
p. 9, l. 283. depe : tyde. The rhyme becomes perfect if we read wide instead of depe.
p. 9, l. 286. French text gives, l. 934:
“Si emplirons les fossés.”
p. 9, l. 289. Cf. Destruction, l. 627. “Mahon te benoie,” and l. 925, “Mahon te doint honour.”
p. 9, l. 293. Men myght go even to the walle, compare the Destruction, l. 918:
“K’om poet aler al mure.”
and l. 958:
“K’om pooit bien au mur et venir et aler.”
p. 9, l. 295. assaile, evidently a mistake. Read assaute, as in l. 2205.
p. 9, l. 298. shour, “fight, attack.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 9206. sharpe shoures, as in the Destruction of Troy, l. 5804, “sharp was the shoure.” Cf. also l. 950 of this poem, “bataile was sharpe.”
p. 9, l. 300. stones thai bare, etc. Destruction, l. 967:
“Ces dedens ou grans pieres firent grant lapide.”
p. 9, l. 303. French text gives (l. 975):
“Maintes pieres del mur ont contreval rue.”
p. 9, l. 306. In the Destruction, l. 977:
“L’asalt dureit cel jour jusque a la nutee.”
p. 9, l. 307. French: “Payen se sont retrait.” Destruction, l. 979.
p. 10, l. 311. For tyde : chidde see Introduction, p. xliii.
p. 10, l. 312.
“Lucafer li traitre traison ad pense,
Qu’il se contrefera les armes del cite;
Et tote si pense sont a Labam demonstre.
‘Sire admirail d’Espaigne,’ ceo dist li diffaies,
‘La cite est moult fors, et François sont doute;
Ils defendront le mur, ja mais n’iert entre,
Que par une voidie que jeo ai porpense.
Il ad dedens un conte de mult grant crualte,
Savaris ad a non, est de grant parente;
Chescon jour il s’en ist, s’est oue nous melle,
De la gent dieffae, mainte teste a coupe.”
—Destr., ll. 986–96.
p. 10, l. 317. Destruction, l. 997.
“J’ai bien conu ses armes et les ai avise.”
p. 10, l. 331. Destruction, l. 1011:
“Tantost le mestre porte aurons moult bien ferme.”
p. 10, l. 332. Destruction, l. 1057:
“Mais tot le premier bail ont Sarrasin poeple.”
p. 10, l. 336. discumfiture, “defeat.” See below, note to l. 1320.
p. 10, l. 339. ryme, “to speak loudly, to cry.” O.E. hrêman or hrŷman. See Stratmann, p. 322.
p. 10, l. 340. French text (l. 1063):
“De V. M. ne remendrent que iiiC sans fausser.”
See note to l. 67.
p. 10, l. 341. twelfe : selve; f and v very often stand for one another, see Introduction on p. xliii.
p. 10, l. 344. shite : mette. See Ellis, Pronunc., I. 272, and Introduction, on p. xliv. Cf. also ll. 2054, 2963, 2960. by than = then; see Mätzner’s Wörterb. p. 217(2).
p. 11, l. 346. Estragot or Astragot. This name is not to be found in the other versions, it only occurs in the Sowdan and in the Destruction; cf. Destr. l. 1090–4:
“Estragot le poursuit uns geans diffaies
········
Teste avoit com senglers, si fu rois corones.
El main tient .i. mace de fin ascier trempe,
Un coup a Savaris desur le chef done.”
p. 11, l. 360. French text reads:
“Et la novele en ont l’apostoile conté.”
—Destr. l. 1101.
p. 11, l. 363. consaile : slayne. See Introduction, p. xliii.
p. 11, l. 364. See above, l. 78.
p. 11, l. 368. erille is not derived from the Erse, as the editor of the Roxburghe Club edition supposes. It is simply another spelling for erle, which occurs in l. 1986. O.E. eorl, Mod. Eng. earl.
p. 11, l. 369. There must be a gap of some lines here; between this and the following line a space has been left of about the width of one line; l. 370 is written in a much later hand.
p. 11, l. 376. lettres translates the French “li brief” (Destr. l. 1121), in haste = French “isnelement” (Destr. l. 1119).
p. 11, l. 377. we ordeyne makes no sense. Read were ordeyned, as in l. 2396. Cf. the Destruction, l. 1133:
“Tot troi sont coiement de la cite hastés.”
p. 12, l. 379. at a posterne. On the posterns compare Skeat, Spec. of Eng. Literature, 359, 165.
p. 12, l. 380. aboute mydnyghte. French: “Tote la nuit alerent ou la lune clarté.” Destr. l. 1136. ‹p105›
p. 12, l. 394. honde of honde, “hand to hand.”—In the Glossary of the Roxburghe Club ed. we read: “Cast. Wherewithal to throw.” This is the sense of cast in l. 2471; but it occurs with two other meanings. In l. 394 cast signifies “device, plot, intention,” as often elsewhere. In ll. 460, 2091, 2099, 2467, 2603, 2792, it means “the act of throwing, the throw.”
p. 12, l. 400. hevy, “afflicted, sorrowful.” So in ll. 3037, 3224.
p. 13, l. 427. Estagote, miswritten for Estragote, cf. ll. 346, 352, and Destr. l. 1090. brake on three, cf. ll. 2234, 1388, 1269.
p. 13, l. 441. Sarsyns : Romaynes. See Introduction, p. xliv.
p. 14, l. 464. oost does not rhyme with beste. Both the sense and the rhyme will be improved if we read rest for oost.
p. 14, l. 473. As it stands, the line makes no sense. This is written indistinctly in the MS., so that we may read either this or thus; the sense requires the latter, which I think is the true reading. Or else we may keep this and write idone instead of it done.
p. 15, l. 488. aras. Read a ras, and see note to l. 1349.
p. 15, l. 491. and armes makes no sense, as we are hardly entitled to take armes for the 2nd person plural imperative; which in this poem always ends in -eth. See Introduction, p. xxxvii. I think we must change and into as. For the explanation of the phrase “as armes,” see note on l. 2660.
p. 15, l. 495. The Ascopars or Ascopartes are mentioned in the Destruction as the subjects of the Soudan. The name of this people is not to be found in any other version. Astopars is merely a clerical error for Ascopars, which may be easily accounted for by remembering that in the MSS. the characters c and t are very often formed almost alike. The true spelling Ascopars is found in ll. 2196, 2648; cf. also the Destruction, ll. 98, 426. Nothing is known of the origin and the home of the Ascoparts. That they must have been men of great bodily strength follows from l. 496, “for ye be men of mighte,” and l. 2645, “that bene boolde and hardy to fighte.” Compare also what is said about them by Donne, in his first satire:
“Those Askaparts, men big enough to throw
Charing-cross for a bar.”
It is worthy while to note that a giant, called Askapard, occurs in the romance of Sir Bevis of Hamptoun. See Ellis, Metr. Romances, ed. Halliwell, p. 263.
p. 15, l. 500. Ho is evidently a mistake for we. rere-warde, “rear-guard;” the van is called fowarde, ll. 502, 732, the main body the medyl partye, l. 735.
p. 15, l. 504. than : gon. See Introduction, p. xxxv.
p. 15, l. 510. oon makes no sense. I suspect the reading of this and the following stanza is quite corrupt. If ll. 510 and 511 should belong to different stanzas, the enjambement, or continuation of the ‹p106› sense from one stanza to another, would be unusually strong. I am therefore inclined to think that originally a stanza began at l. 510, and that there is a line wanting after l. 509, which contained the rhyme to bon (l. 508). The scribe noticing the absence of rhyme tried to restore it himself. Adding oon to l. 510, he made it rhyme with bon (l. 508). Having thus destroyed the rhyme of ll. 510 and 512 (Alisaundre : Cassaundre, as in l. 984), he added gaye to l. 512, which now rhymed to l. 514, where he still added to fraye. In order to get a rhyme to l. 518, he changed in l. 516 the original laye (: Romayne) into lan (“he ceased, stopped”), and wrote “to” the grounde instead of “on” (cf. l. 1186) or “at” (cf. ll. 533, 435) the grounde, connecting thus these words with l. 515, whereas originally they belonged to there he laye, or—as there also may have been added by the scribe—to he laye. If now we read with mayne instead of ful evene, in l. 521, we get a perfect rhyme to l. 519; l. 520 having lost its rhyming line, he made it rhyme, by adding than to l. 522, which originally rhymed to l. 524. Now to get a rhyme to l. 524 he composed and inserted himself l. 526. Therefore I think the original reading of these two stanzas ran as follows:
510 | Sir Ferumbras of Alisaundre |
That bolde man was in dede, | |
Uppon a steede Cassaundre | |
He roode in riche weede. | |
514 | Sir Bryer of Poyle a Romayne |
He bare through with a spere; | |
Dede on the ground [there] he laye, | |
Might he no more hem dere. | |
518 | That saw Huberte, a worthy man, |
Howe Briere was islayne, | |
Ferumbras to quite than | |
To him he rode with mayne. | |
522 | With a spere uppone his shelde |
Stiffly gan he strike; | |
The shelde he brake imiddis the feelde, | |
His hawberke wolde not breke. | |
526 | Ferumbras was agreved tho, &c. |
On the rhyme Romayne : laye (l. 514) cf. ll. 536, 890.
p. 15, l. 514. Bryer of Poyle does not occur in any of the other versions.
p. 15, l. 516. lan, preterite of lin, “to cease;” more common in the compound blin, contracted from * be-lin.
p. 15, l. 517. might he no more hem dere. On the order of words, cf. ll. 2954, 649, 2435.
p. 16, l. 520. qwite, “to requite, reward, retaliate, pay off.” See below note to l. 780.
p. 16, l. 531. On stronge (O.E. strang) : istonge (O.E. gestungen), see Introduction, p. xxxv.
p. 16, l. 532. astraye, “out of the right way or proper place, running ‹p107› about without guidance.” O.French estraier, which is derived from Latin ex strada, see Diez, Etym. Wörterb. I. 402; II. 296.
p. 16, l. 541. werre, “war,” seems to owe its origin to the French guerre, as it is not found in O.E. It appears for the first time in the Saxon Chronicle,—he coude, “he knew, had endured.” See Mätzner’s Grammatik, II. 262.
p. 17, l. 555. It is evident that all ane must be a corruption. Perhaps the conjecture of the editor of the Roxb. Club edition, supposing all rafe to be the true reading, may be right. But he is certainly wrong to identify this rafe with the rafe in l. 866, which, being the infinitive mood of a verb, cannot be taken for an adjective or adverb, which the sense seems to require in l. 555. Halliwell, s. v. Raff, gives: “in raff = speedily.” There is a Danish adjective, rap, “brisk, quick.” Cf. Skeat, Etym. Dict. s. v. raffle and rap.
p. 17, l. 570. certaine spoils the rhyme. The rhyme becomes perfect if we read without faile, as in l. 322.
p. 17, l. 573. aplight, “on plight, on my word.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 8541. It is often used as an expletive.
p. 17, l. 580. who the sowdan, etc. = who is the Sowdan. The verb of the sentence is wanting; cf. note to l. 2156.
p. 17, l. 587. French text gives:
“Et Guion de Bourgoyne ad a lui appelé
Fils est de sa soror et de sa parenté
Cosins, vous en irrés. . .”
Destr. ll. 1179, et seq.
p. 18, l. 613. hight = (1) “was called,” (2) “promised,” (3) “called” (partic. past). It is the preterite tense of haten, hoten, or hat (l. 3154). Cf. Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 169.
p. 18, l. 614. than seems to be a corruption, and I think must be left out. Florip is the genitive of Florip, which occurs as a nominative in ll. 2075, 1527. There is another nominative Floripas which forms the genitive Floripas, ll. 1659, 2350.
p. 19, l. 625. Isres, the name of the “chief porter of the town,” who betrayed the city, only occurs in the Sowdan; in the Destruction the same treachery is committed by Tabour, D. 1203.
“Uns traitre del cit que del porte out les cles.”
p. 19, l. 636. bandon, literally “proclamation,” means “power, disposal.” See Skeat, Etym. Dict. s. v. abandon.
p. 19, l. 647. French:
“Le chief al portier trenche,” Destr. l. 1236.
p. 19, l. 648. In the Destr. l. 1244–5:
“Dieux” fist il “te maldie, et que t’ont engendre,
Kar traitour au darain averont mal dehe.”
p. 19, l. 650. met, a mistake for mot, which we find in ll. 1582, 2334, 3170. ‹p108›
p. 20, l. 663. Cf. the Destr. l. 1260:
“Al moustier de saint Piere est Fierenbras alés.”
p. 20, l. 665. the crosse, the crown, the nailes bente. The relics mentioned in the Destruction are the crown of thorns, the cross, the nails, and the “signe,” which, as I have shown in my Dissertation (pp. 45, 46), does not mean “inscription of the cross,” but is the Greek σινδων, and signifies “the shroud, or winding-sheet, of the Lord, suaire, sudatorium.” In the French Fierabras, as well as in Syr Ferumbras, no mention is made of the cross.
p. 20, l. 673. thare instead of there would improve the rhyme. See Introduction, p. xxxv.
p. 20, l. 678. fade, O.E. fadian, “dispose, suit.” Stratmann, p. 187.
p. 20, l. 679. frankencense = “pure incense.” Compare Skeat, Etym. Dict.
p. 20, l. 686. roial, “excellent.” Cf. “roial spicerye,” Chaucer, ed. Morris, III. 135/142.
p. 21, l. 699. Alle on a flame that cite was; cf. the French:
“Kant il vindrent a Rome si virent luy porte oueree
La flambe en la cite moult granment alumee.
Pour grant chalour qu’i fu n’i povoient entrer.”
(Destr. ll. 1378–80.)
p. 21, l. 723. The Destruction, ll. 1384–1408, has:
“Si dirrai de Charlon, le fort roi corone.
De par totes ses terres avoit ses gens mande,
N’i remest dus ne quiens ne baron el regne,
Qu’il assemble ne soient a Paris la cite.
Quant il i furent tous venu et ajouste,
L’emperere de France en halt en ad parle:
‘Seignours, or escoutes, si vous dirrai verte,
Li admirails d’Espaigne a no pais gaste
Et oue lui CM sarrazin diffaie.
Il ont ensegie Rome, m’admirable cite,
Tot le pais entour ont il pour voir robbe;
Si jeo ne les soccour tot l’auront il gaste.’
‘Sire,’ firent li princes, ‘a vostre volonte:
Nous ne vous failliromes tant que poons durer.’
Adonc en ad li rois grant joie demene.
Quant si gent furent prest a complir son pense,
Adonc s’en est li rois eralment aprestes
Et si firent li contes de France le regne.
Quant sont appareillie si sont enchemine:
iii C mil chevaliers ad li rois el barne
Oliviers porte sa baneer que ben leu ad guie,
Rollans fu en arriere, li vassals adures.
De soccoure Guion s’en est li rois hastes.
Tant ont il nuit et jor chivalche et erre.
Qu’il sont en Romenie, n’i ont reine tire.”
p. 22, l. 744. He knewe the baner of France. The French text has: ‹p109›
“Guis parceut le baniere le roi de saint Dine,
Encontre lui chevalche, la novele ont conte,
Come la forte cite li payen ont gaste:
La corone et les clous d’iloec en sont robbe
Et les altres reliques. . .”
p. 23, l. 766. for, “notwithstanding, in spite of.” So also in l. 2904.
p. 23, l. 771. Destr., l. 1425:
“Li vens en fiert es voiles que les a ben guies.”
p. 23, l. 776. for south, “forsooth,” cf. ll. 2014, 897, 2024, 1025, 2246.
p. 23, l. 778. French: “il sont en terre entre.”
p. 23, l. 779. fonde : grounde. fonde is spelt founde in ll. 1857, 3020, 344, 2353, 2363.
p. 23, l. 780. stroyeth = “destroyeth.” “Compounds of Romance origin, the first part of which is a preposition, or words derived from such, often mutilate, or even entirely drop the preposition” (Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 576). Thus we have sail, l. 385, = “assail;” longeth, l. 3254, = “belongeth;” skomfited, l. 1320, = “diskomfited,” ll. 336, 1464; quite, l. 520, = “requite;” perceived, l. 2659, = “aperceived;” saut, ll. 619, 2200, = “assaut,” l. 615; ginne, l. 2326, = “enginne,” l. 333; playne, l. 177, = “complayn;” skaped, l. 2049, = “askaped,” l. 2218.
p. 23, l. 787. French: “iiiC mile François.”
p. 24, l. 812. ychoon : Mahounde. See Introduction, p. xlii.
p. 24, l. 820. stroke : stoupe. See Introduction, p. xliii.
p. 24, l. 820. stenyed, “stunned,” not from O.Fr. estaindre, as the editor of the Roxb. Club ed. suggests, but from O.E. stunian, “percellere, stupefacere.” See Stratmann, p. 540.
p. 24, l. 835. Observe the subject expressed twice; cf. ll. 723, 1031, 1682, 1814, 2331.
p. 25, l. 836. Neymes. This celebrated hero has been especially famous by the advices and counsels of which even in matters of greatest difficulty he was never at a loss. “Tel conseiller n’orent onques li Franc,” i. e. the French had never such a counsellor. This passage of the romance of Aspremont may be looked upon as containing the portrait of Neymes as we find him described in all poems. The story of his birth and youth is in the romance of Aubri le Bourgoing. He was the son of Gasselin, king of Bavaria. Cassile, an usurper, is about to seize the throne and to kill the young Neymes, when Charlemagne comes to his help and re-establishes the legitimate inheritor.
p. 25, l. 836. Ogier Danoys (cf. l. 1687) is one of the twelve peers in this poem. His life is contained in the French poem of the “Chevallerie Ogier” by Raimbert de Paris. According to that romance Ogier had been delivered in his youth to Charlemagne as ‹p110› a pledge to secure the discharge of the tribute which his father Geffroi, king of Denmark, was bound to pay to the emperor. The French ambassadors having once been insulted by Geffroy, Charlemagne swears to make Ogier pay with his life the offence done by his father, and Ogier is going to be executed when the emperor, following the urgent requests of messengers arrived from Rome, suddenly starts to deliver this city from the Saracens. On this expedition the French army is hard pressed by the enemy, but Ogier by his eminent prowess and valour enables Charles to enter Rome. He now is pardoned and becomes the favourite of the emperor. Several years afterwards Ogier’s son Baudouinet is slain by Charlot, the son of Charlemagne, as they were quarrelling about a party of chess. Ogier, in order to revenge his son, goes as far as to attack Charlemagne himself, but on the point of being taken a prisoner, he escapes and flees to Didier, king of Lombardy. Charles makes war on Didier, and after a long struggle Ogier is taken and imprisoned at Reims, where he is going to be starved, when a sudden invasion of the Saracens obliges Charlemagne again to have recourse to the courage and valour of the Dane. Ogier delivers France by slaying the giant Bréhus. To reward him for the service done to his country, Charles gives him the county of Hainaut, where afterwards, as the poem tells us, he died in the renown of holiness.
p. 25, l. 845. it = “hit.” Cf. note to l. 41.
p. 25, l. 847–50. These four lines seem to be incorrect. As they stand, the three first lines are rhymed together, and there is no rhyme to the fourth. The diction of the whole passage, which cannot be said to be ungrammatical, is nevertheless wanting in precision and exactness.
p. 25, l. 866. rafe = rave.
p. 25, l. 868. Moun-joye is the name of Charlemagne’s sword in this poem (cf. ll. 3111, 850), whereas, according to all other romances, the emperor’s sword was called Joyeuse. Mounjoie or Montjoie was the name of the French standard; it was likewise used as the battle-cry of the French, cf. Fierabras, l. 1703, and Syr Ferumbras, ll. 2285, 2652, 4577, 4727. The sword Joyeuse had been forged by the celebrated Weland or Galand, as we read in the French Fierabras, l. 635:
“Et Galans fist Floberge à l’acier atrempé,
Hauteclere et Joiouse, où moult ot dignité;
Cele tint Karlemaines longuement en certé.”
Compare Gaston Paris, Histoire Poétique, p. 374.
p. 26, l. 875. Durnedale. This renowned sword was forged by the famous Galand or Weland. The French Fierabras (l. 645) is the only romance which attributes it to Munifican. It had been given by Charlemagne to Roland as the best of his warriors. As to the exploits achieved with it, Roland enumerates them himself in that celebrated passage, where in his death-hour he tries to break ‹p111› Durnedale to prevent it from falling into the hands of the Saracens (Chanson de Roland, ll. 2316–2337). The steel blade of this sword has been highly praised for its extraordinary hardness. It had been tried by Charlemagne himself on that “perron,” or steel block before the emperor’s palace in Aix-la-Chapelle (see Histoire Poétique, p. 370). Durnedale proved good as well as Almace, the sword of Turpin. But Courtain, Ogier’s sword, was then shortened by half a foot. According to l. 1407 of the Sowdan, Durnedale broke; but this incident has been mentioned nowhere else. Cf. Syr Ferumbras, l. 997, and Fierabras, l. 1740.
p. 26, l. 876. romme, spelt also rome, rowme, roum, is Mod. E. room, O.E. rûm, “spatium.”
p. 26, l. 880. dinge; read gan dinge. Dinge is the infinitive mood, but the sense requires a preterite tense. The preterite of dinge is dong, dongen, which occurs in l. 1263. But as dinge cannot be altered here, on account of the rhyme, the passage is easily corrected by adding gan = “he began to strike, he struck.”
p. 26, l. 884. Alloreynes of Loreynes and Aleroyse (l. 1699) are probably identical. Then Alloreynes would be an error of the scribe, who having already the following Loreynes in his mind wrote Alloreynes instead of Alleroyse.
p. 26, l. 900. in fay = “truly,” fay= “faith, truth.” O.Fr. fei or feid, Lat. fides.
p. 26, l. 904–5. Cf. Chanson de Roland, ll. 1903–4:
“Rollanz est proz e Oliviers est sages,
Ambedui unt merveillus vasselage.”
p. 27, l. 913. I cannot tell what treyumple means, or whether it be a corruption.
p. 27, l. 939. This kind of prayer or apostrophe addressed to the God of War is certainly taken from another English work, which I am unable to trace, but which must have been much known at the time of our author, as we find it referred to in different authors. That it has been taken from another poem is proved by some phrases of this prayer which are somewhat obscure or rather unintelligible here, and which we certainly should be able to explain if we knew the original context in which they occurred. Then the form hase (l. 940) is somewhat suspicious, as it is the only instance of the 2nd person singular present dropping the t, which it has always in this poem. The arrangement, too, of the following stanzas differs from that generally observed in the Sowdan. If we consider our poem as composed in eight-line stanzas (but see Introduction, p. xl) we mostly find the 1st and 3rd lines rhyming together, then the 2nd and 4th, the 5th and 7th, and finally the 6th and 8th, so that four different rhyme-endings are necessary to one stanza. If now we consider the stanza from l. 939 to 946, we only have two rhyme-endings, all the pair lines rhyming together, and all the odd ones ‹p112› together. In ll. 947 to 950 the 1st and 4th rhyme together, whilst the 2nd and 3rd are paired off together.—ll. 939–941 we find alluded to in Chaucer, see Introduction, p. xlvi, and the Prioress’s Tale, ed. Skeat (Clarendon Press), p. xvii. Compare also Lindsay, The Historie of Squyer Meldrum, l. 390:
“Like Mars, the God Armipotent.”
p. 27, l. 939. rede Mars. “Bocaccio uses the same epithet in the opening of his Teseide: ‘O rubiconde Marte.’ Rede refers to the colour of the planet.” Morris, note to Knight’s Tale, l. 889.
p. 27, l. 940. Baye never means “sword,” as the editor of the Roxburghe Club ed. renders it, nor does this translation make any sense here at all; baye signifies “a wide, open room or space in a building.” See Mätzner’s Wörterbuch, p. 164. Morris, in the Glossary to the Alliterative Poems, has “bay = recess. The original meaning seems to be opening of any kind. Cf. bay, space in a building between two main beams.” Halliwell, s. v. bay, has: “A principal compartment or division in the architectural arrangement of a building.” It appears to be etymologically the same word as Ital. baja, French baie, “bay, gulf, harbour,” the French baie being equally used for “opening of any kind.” The Catalan form for baie is badia, which corresponds to the verb badar, meaning “to open.” See Diez, Etym. Wörterb. I. 46. Bay is retained in the Mod. E. compound “bay-window.” Cf. also the French “la bée d’une fenestre,” cited by Carpentier-Ducange, s. v. beare. With regard to the signification of trende, the editor of the Roxb. Club ed. wrongly guessed again in explaining it as “drawn” or “trenchant, cutting.” Trende means “turned, bent, vaulted in the form of an arch.” See Halliwell, p. 887, and Stratmann, p. 572, s. v. trenden (= “volvere”). But I am at a loss how to explain why Mars is said to have put up his throne in an arched recess, or compartment, of a building.
p. 28, l. 957. some, a clerical error for sone.
p. 28, l. 965. prymsauns of grene vere = “the earliest days of green spring” (Glossary to the Roxb. Club ed.). This may be the sense; but what is the literal meaning of prymsauns? If we had prymtauns, or prymtaunce, we might be inclined to take it for a corruption of French printemps, as we find pastaunce or pastance corrupted from passe-temps. (See Skeat, Spec. of Eng. Literature, 460/149 and 427/1096.) Cf. also the Romaunt of the Rose, ll. 3373–74: “At prime temps, Love to manace, Ful ofte I have been in this caas.” Or is prymtauns perhaps a clerical error for entrauns or entraunce? This would then make us think of such passages as the following one:
“Che fu ou mois de mai, à l’entree d’esté,
Que florissent cil bos et verdissent cil pré.”
Fierabras, ll. 5094–5.
p. 28, l. 966. spryngyn, the only instance of the 3rd person present plural ending in -yn (for the common -en). This perhaps is due to ‹p113› the scribe thinking already of the following yn in begynne. But it must be stated that the whole passage is rather obscure. Neither the meaning of springyn and begynne nor the connection of l. 966 with the following lines is very clear. Floures occurring twice looks also somewhat suspicious. Moreover, these two stanzas do not well suit the context and might easily be done without; they are evidently borrowed from some other poem. Observe besides the alliteration in floures, frithe, freshly.
p. 28, l. 973. lithe, “to hear.” O.Icel. hlŷða, “auscultare.” Stratmann, s. v. hlîþen, p. 315.
p. 29, l. 993. lese miswritten for lefe, which sense and rhyme require, and which occurs in ll. 832, 1526.
p. 29, l. 995. bassatours (?) = “vavassours, vavasors.”
p. 29, l. 999. Inde Major. The meaning of Major is not clear. Cf. besides Chanson de Roland, ed. Gautier, Glossarial Index, s. v. Major. Compare also Destr. l. 690: terre Majour.
p. 29, l. 1000. The great number of geographical names contained in these two lines is probably due to the favourite habit of mediæval romance writers, who thought that they showed their geographical knowledge by introducing long strings of names. Thus we find in Web. Rom. II. l. 632 et seq., the names of sixteen towns mentioned in fourteen lines, all of which are said to have been visited by Richard the Lion-hearted. Again in the same poem, ll. 3679, et seq., we find the names of thirteen countries occurring in ten lines. Cf. also King Alis., Web. Rom. I. ll. 1440 and 1692. Often, too, geographical names seem to be inserted on account of the rhyme, as Chaunder in l. 123, and Europe in l. 1001.
p. 29, l. 1008. Camalyon, “meaning, probably, the camelopardalis. The blood of a cameleon would go a very little way towards satisfying a thirsty Saracen” (Ellis, Metr. R. 387). Perhaps also the poet did not know much of either of these two kinds of animals, and all he wished was to cite an animal with some outlandish name.
p. 30, l. 1025. southe : wrothe. The spelling sothe occurs in ll. 2014, 2024, 2246, 2719. There must be a lacuna of one or more lines here. The rhyme-word to dute (l. 1024) is wanting; the context also evidently shows that ll. 1025 and 1026, as they stand together, make no sense. It is worth while to add that the next five lines, contrary to the common usage of our poem, are all rhymed together.
p. 30, l. 1040. Observe Paens, i. e. “pagans,” used as a proper name here; cf. the Destr. l. 98, and Fierabras, l. 5673.
p. 31, l. 1051. For a description of Ferumbras, compare Fierabras, ll. 578 et seq., and ll. 611 et seq., and Syr Ferumbras, l. 550.
p. 31, l. 1060. trwes = trues, truce.
p. 31, l. 1067. sex. So in the French Fierabras, l. 84:
“Ja n’en refuserai, par Mahom, jusqu’à vi.”
In the English Ferumbras, l. 102, we read:
“And þoȝ þer come twelue, þe beste of þy fered,
I will kuþe on hem my miȝt, & dyngen hem al to douste.”
p. 31, l. 1071. in fere = “together.” fere, literally “one who fares with one,” means “a travelling companion, a comrade, a mate; a company.” O.E. (ge-)fera.
p. 31, l. 1074. man = “bondman, subject, vassal.” So in ll. 1354 1466.
p. 31, l. 1077. childe, “young knight, young man.” See Skeat’s note to Sir Thopas (Clarendon Press), 162/2020.
p. 31, l. 1084. Cf. the French text:
“Sire, ce dist Rollans, chertes, tort en aves,
Car, par icel seigneur Ki Dix est appelés,
Je vauroie moult miex que fuissiés desmenbrés
Ke jou en baillasse armes ne ne fuisse adobés.
Hier quant paien nous vindrent à l’issue des gués
L. mile furent, à vers helmes jesmés,
Grans caus en soustenimes sur les escus bandés;
Oliviers mes compaigns i fu le jour navrés.
Tout fuissons desconfit, c’est fines verités,
Quant vous nous secourustes e vos riches barnés,
Et paien s’en tournerent les frains abandonnés.
Quant fumes repairié as loges et as trés,
Puis te vantas le soir, quant tu fus enivrés,
Que li viel chevalier c’avoies amené
L’avoient moult miex fait que li joule d’assés,
Assés en fui le soir laidement ramponés.”
(ll. 144–161.)
Compare also Syr Ferumbras, ll. 144–163
p. 32, l. 1088. of = “on account of.”
p. 32, l. 1092. According to most of the old romances Roland was invulnerable. He never lost any blood by a wound but on the occasion when he was beaten by Charlemagne
“For trois goutes sans plus, quant Charles par irour
Le feri de son gant que le virent plousour.”
See Histoire Poétique, p. 264.
The French text (ll. 166–170) runs as follows:
“Karles trait son gant destre, qui fu à or parés
Fiert le comte Rollant en travers sur le nés;
Après le caup en est li sans vermaus volés.
Rollans jete le main au branc qui est letrés;
Ja en ferist son oncle se il n’en fust ostés.”
p. 32, l. 1094. abye, “to pay for, suffer for.” In Mod. Eng. abye is corrupted into abide. See Morris, Gloss. to Chaucer (Clarend. Press), s. v. aboughte.
p. 32, l. 1096. Double negatives like never none are pretty common in mediæval writers. Cf. in the Sowdan, ll. 1876, 2181, 2199, 2279, 2305. ‹p115›
p. 32, l. 1103. at one, “of one mind, agreement.” Cf. King Horn, ed. Lumby, l. 925:
“At on he was wiþ þe king.”
Hence Mod. Eng. atone, “to set at one, to reconcile.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 5308.
p. 32, l. 1106. to make voydaunce, the same as to voide, l. 1768 = “to quit, to depart from, to get rid of.”
p. 32, l. 1110. withoute more = “without delay, immediately.” more is O.E. mâra, comparative to micel; it is not the Latin more. See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 719.
p. 33, l. 1126. renewed, “tied.” Fr. renouer, from nœud = Lat. nodius. It is to be distinguished from renewed = “renovated,” which occurs in l. 2200.
p. 32, l. 1128. hidur is spelt hider in ll. 810, 833, etc.
p. 32, l. 1135. Generyse. In the other versions Olyver calls himself Garin. See Introduction on p. xxxiii.
p. 32, l. 1141. lerne, “to teach.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 6352. scole, O.E. scôl, Mod. Eng. school, means here “style, or manner of fighting.” It must not be confounded with schole, O.E. scolu, “troop, band,” Mod. Eng. shoal. Cf. also The Song of Roland, 129/786.
p. 33, l. 1145. myghty men of honde. So in l. 3029. The same phrase occurs in M.H.G. “ein helt ze sînen handen,” which is explained as meaning, “a hero [or one who becomes a hero] by the strength of his hands or arms.” See Jänicke’s note to Biterolf, 5078, and Grimm’s Grammatik, IV. 727 note. The expression seems to be originally French; cf. Méon, Fabliaux, III. 478: “chevaliers de sa main”; Renard, ed. Martin, l. 21409: “proedom de sa main.” Cf. also Roman des Eles, ed. Scheler, l. 433, where main is wrongly explained by the editor.
p. 33, l. 1151. plete, “plead.” The rhyme leads us to suppose that the author pronounced plede, which indeed is the more common form.
p. 33, l. 1154. and makes no sense here. thenkes must also be incorrect, the 3rd person present singular always terminating in -eth in this poem, and not in -es. Read as thenketh me; thenketh me occurs in l. 465.
p. 34, l. 1158. pight, “pitched, fixed.” The infinitive mood is picchen; cf. O.Dutch picken, O.Icel. pikka, “pungere, pangere.”
p. 34, l. 1159. In the French Fierabras, l. 606 et seq., Oliver also assists the Saracen to put on his gear. This point is not mentioned in the Ashmolean version, see Introduction, p. xxviii.
p. 34, l. 1163. worthed up, “became up, got up, mounted.” It is the past tense of the verb worthen, O.E. weorðan, “to become.” Another past tense of this verb is worth, l. 1204.
p. 34, l. 1164. areest, or arest = “a rest, or support for the spear when ‹p116› couched for the attack” (Morris). Originally = “stoppage, waiting, readiness.” Cf. Mätzner’s Wörterbuch, p. 107.
p. 34, l. 1167. as fire of thonder, cf. dinte of thondir in l. 1207.
p. 34, l. 1168. to-braste, “burst in pieces.” The prefix to-, answering to Germ. zer-, has the force of “in twain, asunder.”
p. 34, l. 1170. threste, O.E. þrstan, “premere, trudere.” The author probably pronounced thraste, which will improve the rhyme.
p. 34, ll. 1179–80. upon the hede (blank in MS) the hede. This is evidently a mistake of the scribe; sore, l. 1180, too, which does not rhyme with crowne, is probably miswritten for sone. The rhyme as well as the context shows that the true reading is:
“Olyver him hitte again
Upon the hede than fulle sone
He carfe awaye with myght and mayne
The cercle that sate uppon his crowne.”
p. 34, l. 1182. About the cercle, see Demay, Le Costume de guerre, p. 132. “Non seulement le cône du heaume (helme) est bordé par ce cercle, mais il est parfois renforcé dans toute sa hauteur par deux arêtes placées l’une devant, l’autre derrière, ou par quatre bandes de métal ornementées (de verroteries), venant aboutir et se croiser à son sommet.”—crowne means the “tonsure of the head,” then topically “the skull or head.”
p. 34, l. 1185. the botteles of bawme are not mentioned anywhere else in the Sowdan; the other versions tell us that the balm contained in those vessels was the same as that with which Christ was anointed. Cf. Syr Ferumbras, ll. 510–517; and see Introduction, p. vi and xxix.
p. 34, l. 1191. the river. According to the oldest version of the poem the whole combat took place on the shore of the Tiber, near Rome. See Introduction, pp. xi and xxxii. Cf. Fierabras, l. 1049:
“Pres fu du far de Rome, ses a dedes jetés,”
and Philippe Mousket, I. 4705–6:
“Les .ii. barius qu’à Rome prist,
Si les gieta enmi le Toivre.”
In the Sowdan as well as in the Ashmole MS. there is no mention of Oliver’s drinking of the balm before throwing it into the water, which both the Provençal and the French versions tell us he did. Cf. Fierabras, ll. 1031–1048, and the Provençal version, ll. 1335, et seq.
p. 35, l. 1210. fille, “fel.”
p. 35, ll. 1221. dere spoils the rhyme. Read “free.”
p. 36, l. 1250. Cousyn to King Charles, cf. l. 1117. In ll. 1499 and 1671 Oliver is said to be nephew to Charlemagne. He was the son of Renier de Gennes, who according to Sir Ferumbras, l. 652: “Y am Charlis emys sone”—was the uncle of Charlemagne. In the poem Girar de Viane we find Oliver among the enemies of the ‹p117› Emperor and fighting with Roland in close combat; they are at length stopped by divine interposition. Then began a close friendship which lasted till their death at Roncesvaux. Oliver’s sister Aude was betrothed to Roland. See, besides, Syr Ferumbras, ll. 422, 1297, 1305, 1354.
p. 36, l. 1258. harde grace, “misfortune,” cf. l. 2790.
p. 36, l. 1259. Persagyn. This name does not occur in any other version again, except in the Destruction, where one Persagon appears in the list of the Saracen barons. But it is not stated there that he is uncle to Ferumbras; cf. besides Fierabras, ll. 2614, 2784.
p. 37, l. 1263. Observe the four consecutive feminine rhymes.
p. 37, l. 1277. The scene as related here widely differs from that described in the Ashmolean version. In the Sowdone, Oliver gets hold of the sword which is “trussed on Ferumbras’s stede.” In the Ashmolean poem it is not Oliver who is disarmed, but Ferumbras, and Oliver allows him to pick up his weapon again. This in itself furnishes us an argument for conjecturing that the author of the Sowdon did not follow, or even know of, the Ashmolean version. In the French poem, as well as in the Provençal, it is likewise Oliver who is disarmed. If in those poems we find mentioned besides that Ferumbras offered his enemy to take up his sword again—an incident not related in the Sowdan—we do not consider this to disprove our supposition that the French version was the source of the Sowdan, as we may consider our author in this case simply to have adhered to his favourite practice of shortening his original as much as possible, so far as no essential point is concerned. Cf. the French Fierabras, ll. 1289–1346.
p. 37, l. 1286. saught is a misprint for raught.
p. 37, l. 1289. He thought he quyte. quyte may be explained as standing for quyted, or else he must be changed into to: He thought to quyte, the latter reading is perhaps preferable. We find in l. 3110 a passage agreeing almost exactly with this.
p. 38, l. 1298. Qwyntyn. The name of this Saint does not occur in any other version of our romance.
p. 38, l. 1308. There is no mention made of this prayer in the Ashmolean version, the Sowdan here (ll. 1308–1340) agrees again with the French Fierabras, ll. 1164–1244 (and with the Provençal poem, l. 1493, et seq.), with the only difference, that the prayer which Charlemagne addressed to God, in order to bestow the victory upon the Christian hero, is much longer in F; and is stuffed with so many details of the Scripture, that in some way it may be regarded as a succinct account of the whole life of the Lord.
p. 38, l. 1320. skomfited = discomfited, l. 1464. It is formed by the same analogy as stroyeth = destroyeth. See note to l. 780. The substantive discumfiture, O.Fr. desconfiture, occurs in l. 336; the same ‹p118› word, without prefix, is found in M.H.G., cf. Kudrun, ed. Martin, 646, 2:
“dô si hêten gerne die porten zuo getân
dô muosten si daz lernen durch schumphentiuren verlân.”
The Italian noun is sconfitta, and the verb sconfiggere.
p. 38, l. 1327. God aboue does not rhyme with lord almighty. The rhyme is easily restored if we read of might (cf. l. 2059) for aboue, and if we change almighty into almighte, so that we have:
l. 1327. | “Tho Charles thanked God of myghte.” |
l. 1329. | “And saide, ‘blessed be thou, lord almyghte.’” |
The adjective almiȝt is of frequent occurrence in Mid. Eng. writers. So in Allit. Poems, I. 497: “in sothful gospel of god almyȝt;” Syr Ferumbras, l. 3580, “God almyȝte: siȝte;” ibid. l. 3815, “god almyȝt: wyȝt.”
p. 39, l. 1349. cas is an erratum for ras.—“Ras, shave.” “Rees 1693, evening.” These explanations given by the editor of the Roxb. Club ed. are wrong. Ras and rees being both derived from O.E. rs, “impetus cursus,” are indiscriminately used in three meanings: (1) “onset, assault;” (2) “course, run, rush, haste, hurry;” (3) “space, time, occasion.” The last signification is well shewn by the following passages:
“Hit lasteþ but a lutel rees.”
(Cl. Maydenhod, l. 26.)
“Þat ys to seye upon a rees,
Stynkyng Saxone, be on pees.”
(Arthur, ed. Furnivall, l. 525.)
In the Sowdan ras or rees means (1) “time, instant, occasion,” ll. 1349, 1693; (2) “rush, hurry, haste,” ll. 645, 489. rase, l. 774 = “current in the sea,” the same word as the preceding ras and rees, meaning properly, “a narrow rush, or violent current of water.” See Morris, Chaucer’s Prologue (Clarendon Press), s. v. reyse. Cf. the French expressions, “raz de mer,” “raz de courent,” “raz de marée.”
p. 39, l. 1361. sene : be. Read se as in ll. 1124, 658, 1826.
p. 40, l. 1372. ryden, which does not rhyme with foghten, is evidently a clerical error. I suppose soghten to be the true reading. For examples of soght = “came, went, moved,” see Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 7151, and Skeat’s Glossary to Specimens, s. v. socht.—There is still another corruption in this passage, as assembled does not rhyme with ordeyned.
p. 40, l. 1380. Note the transition from the indirect to the direct speech.
p. 40, l. 1381. As it stands, the line is too long and spoils the rhythm. The words “if ye cast me downe” can be dispensed with.
p. 40, l. 1383. thare : were (O.E. werian). The rhyme is easily restored by reading there instead of thare, cf. ll. 2604, 2404, 2245, etc. and see Introduction, p. xxxv. ‹p119›
p. 41, ll. 1419–22. Observe the weak rhymes alternating with the strong ones.
p. 41, l. 1420. brother means “brother-in-law.” Oliver’s sister Aude was Roland’s intended bride. Perhaps also brother may be taken here in sense of “brother in arms,” as in most romances we find Roland and Oliver mentioned as a couple of true friends united by the most tender ties of comradeship. Besides, Oliver was highly indebted to Roland, who had rescued him when he had been made a prisoner after his duel with Ferragus.
p. 41, l. 1423. cowthe miswritten for caughte, which we read in ll. 1411, 1603.
p. 41, l. 1424. Ascopartes is the correct form. See note on l. 495.
p. 51, l. 1427. foolde cannot be “earth” here, for which the editor of the Roxburghe Club ed. takes it. Foolde is the participle past of fealden, “to fold, plicare.” It means, “folded, bent down, fallen.” This seems also to be the sense of folde in the following passages:
Laȝamon, 23983–4:
“Þa feol Frolle
folde to grunde.”
Ibid. ll. 27054–6:
“Romanisce veollen
fiftene hundred
folden to grunden.”
Ibid. ll. 20057–60:
“he þohte to quellen
Þe king on his þeode
& his folc valden
volden to grunde.”
Cf. Stratmann, p. 194.
p. 41, l. 1433. Roland and Olyver are taken prisoners. This incident is differently related in the other poems. There Roland is not taken at all, but sent afterwards among the messengers to the Soudan’s court. Together with Oliver four knights are taken, viz. Gwylmer, Berard, Geoffrey and Aubry, who all are carried away by the flying Saracens in spite of the efforts of Roland and Ogier.
p. 42, l. 1451. what = “who.” See Koch, Eng. Gr. II. § 339, and Skeat’s note to Piers the Plowman (Clarendon Press), 113/19. So in ll. 1133, 1623.
p. 42, l. 1456. astyte has nothing to do with the Latin astutus with which the editor of the Roxb. Club ed. apparently confounds it in explaining it as “cunningly devised.” Astyte means “at once, immediately, suddenly”; see Morris, Glossary to Allit. Poems. It is a compound of the simple word tyte, “soon, quickly,” which see above, l. 181.
p. 43, l. 1475. Turpyn. The name of the archbishop is not mentioned in the Ashmolean version. The French text, ll. 1836–40, runs as follows: ‹p120›
“Karles, nostre empereres, en est en piés levés,
Il apela Milon et Turpin l’alosés,
Deus rices arcevesques de moult grant sainteté:
Faites moi tost uns fons beneir et sacrer;
Je woel que cis rois soit bauptiziés et levés.”
Cf. also the Provençal poem, l. 1899, et seq.
p. 43, l. 1483. nought for thane = “nevertheless,” cf. Koch, Eng. Gr. II. p. 473.
p. 43, l. 1486. Rome is a corruption of Roye, as follows from the French Fierabras, l. 1851:
“C’est sains Florans de Roie, ce dist l’auctorités.”
Cf. the Ashmole Ferumbras, l. 1087, and Grœber, Zeitschrift für romanische Philologie, IV. p. 167.
p. 43, l. 1495. affrayned, which must not be confounded with affrayed, as the editor of the Roxburghe Club ed. does, means “asked, inquired.” It is the compound of freynen or fraynen, O.E. frignan, “to ask.” Goth. fraihnan. Germ. fragen.
p. 43, l. 1497. allayned, “concealed.” The simple verb layne (from Icel. leyna, cf. Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 2994) is still retained in the Scottish dialect, with the sense of “to hide.” Cf. also Morris, Allit. Poems, Gloss. s. v. layned.
p. 43, l. 1498. In the other poems the prisoners do not tell their true names; see Introduction, pp. xxvii and xxix; and cf. Syr Ferumbras, l. 1167.
p. 43, l. 1499. Roland is nephew to Charlemagne on his mother’s side. See note to l. 1888, and cf. the Ashmole Ferumbras, l. 2066. For Oliver, see above, note to l. 1250.
p. 44, l. 1515. In the Sowdan Floripas herself advises Laban not to slay his captives, but to imprison them. In the other versions it is one of the barons who gives the same advice. See Introduction, p. xxviii.
p. 44, l. 1539. depe : myrke. The rhyme will be restored by reading dirke or derke instead of depe. derke occurs in l. 2541.
p. 45, l. 1604. maute. “In Old French mauté is malice.” Gloss. to Roxburghe Club ed. I do not know whether mauté exists in O.Fr., but even if it did, it would make no sense here. I feel sure maute is a corruption of mynte or mente (cf. l. 1784), the preterite of minten or menten = “to aim a blow, to strike,” from O.E. myntan, “to intend, to purpose.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 6579, and Morris, Allit. Poems, s. v. mynte. Cf. also Syr Ferumbras, l. 5587:
“Þan Charlis a strok till hym gan mynte;
Ac hym faylede of ys dynte,
for þat swerd hym glente . . .”
p. 47, l. 1615. trew instead of free will restore the rhyme. The same rhyme trewe : newe occurs in ll. 67, 588.
p. 47, l. 1619. fele sithe, “many a time, often.” So in ll. 2740, 2815. Cf. ofte sithe, l. 916. ‹p121›
p. 47, l. 1624. ruly, O.E. hrêowlîc = “rueful, sorrowful, mournful, piteous.”
p. 47, l. 1645. harme skathe makes no sense. Read harme & skathe, which occurs in Gen. and Exod. l. 2314:
“ðis sonde hem overtakeð raðe
And bicalleð of harme and scaðe.”
p. 48, l. 1665. In the French Fierabras (as well as in the Ashmolean version) it is Roland whom Charlemagne addresses first (see above, note to l. 1433); he tells him that he must go on a mission to demand the surrender of Oliver and his companions. Upon which Naymes and the other twelve peers remonstrate, but are all sent to Laban one after the other, just as in the Sowdan. In the Provençal poem it is only Guy who protests. Cf. ll. 2263–2282 of the French Fierabras:
“Rollant regarda tost, si l’a araisonné:
Biaus nés, ce dist li rois, trop sui por vous irés;
Vous movrés le matin, à Aigremore irés;
Si dirés l’amirant, gardés ne li celés,
Rende moi la courone dont Dix fu couronés
Et les autres reliques dont je sui moult penés;
Et en après demant mes chevalier menbrés;
Et se il ne le fait si que deviserés,
Dites jel ferai pendre par la goule à un trefs,
En destre le menrai com .i. larron prové,
Ne troverai putel où il ne soit passé.” etc.
p. 48, l. 1668. Cf. Fierabras, ll. 2309–2321, and Syr Ferumbras, l. 1486–1493.
p. 49, l. 1683. lese, “lose.” So in l. 2655 and 1696, where it rhymes with chese, which occurs again in ll. 2748, 2934.
p. 49, l. 1687. French text gives (ll. 2297, et seq.):
“Ogiers li boins Danois s’en est levés en piés:
Sire drois emperere, pour amour Dieu, oiés:
Bien sai se il i vont ja n’en revenra piés.
Avoec irés, dist Karles, par les ex de mon cief:
Or i serés vous .v. qui porterés mes briés.”
p. 49, l. 1691. Bery must be miswritten for Terry, as we find Terris d’Ardane in the French Fierabras, l. 2290, and Terry of Ardane in Syr Ferumbras, l. 1469. According to l. 3187 of Sir Ferumbras, Thierry is the father of Berard (Bryer) of Mountdidier. Cf. the French text, ll. 2290–96 and Syr Ferumbras, ll. 1468–1473.
p. 49, l. 1693. rees, “time, occasion.” See note to l. 1349.
p. 49, l. 1695. Folk Baliant is not mentioned in any other poem of our romance. See Introduction, p. xxvii.
p. 49, l. 1698. chese, O.E. cêosan, Mod. E. choose. It here means “to be free to choose”:—“You shall not be free to choose,” “you shall have no choice,” “you shall do what you are ordered.” See Mätzner’s remark [in his Wörterb., p. 562, s. v. cheosen] to Halliwell, Dict. p. 250. ‹p122›
p. 49, l. 1699. Aleroyse. See note to l. 884.
p. 49, l. 1711. Turpyn. There was a real bishop of this name, who, according to the Gallia Christiana, held the see of Reims from A.D. 753 to 794. As we find him described in the romances, Turpin was the very type of a knight-bishop. In the poem of Aspremont, he bears before the Christian army the wood of the true cross which in his hands beams with brightness like the sun. In the romance of the Enfances Ogier it was he, into whose custody Ogier was given, when he had been made a prisoner after his revolt, in company with the king of Lombardy, against Charlemagne (see above, note to l. 856), and who, notwithstanding the order of Charles to have Ogier starved to death, kept the Dane alive, who afterwards, when the Saracens invaded France, proved a great help to the Christian arms. As we read in the Chanson de Roland, ll. 2242ss, Turpin met his death at Roncesvaux, but according to the Chronicle of Turpin, he survived the disaster of Roncesvaux, and was saying mass for the dead, when he saw the angels carrying the soul of Roland up to heaven. But from Gaston Paris’s Essay De Pseudo-Turpino we know this chronicle to be an apocryphical book written by two monks of the eleventh and twelfth century.
p. 49, l. 1717. set not of youre barons so light = “do not count, consider them so little.” Cf. “to take one so lighte,” in Syr Ferumbras, ll. 114, 156.
p. 50, l. 1721. gyfe no coost has the same meaning as give no tale = “make no account, do not mind.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, 8143. Cf. also Sowdan, l. 2793, and Syr Ferumbras, l. 5847, 101, 4975; and also ll. 173, 1578.
p. 50, l. 1723. Bryer of Mounteȝ or Berard de Montdidier was celebrated for his gallantries and attentions to the ladies:
“D’ardimen vail Rotlan et Olivier
E de domnei Berart de Mondesdier.”
i. e.—“In prowess I am equal to Rolland and to Oliver, in matters of love to Berart of M.” says the troubadour Peire Vidal in his poem Dragoman seiner; cf. also Fierabras, ll. 2125–7:
“Je ne sai cui vous estes, car ne vous puis viser,
Mais je cuit c’as pucieles sivés moult bien juer,
En cambre sous cortine baisier et acoler.”
See, besides, Syr Ferumbras, ll. 422, 1297, 1305, 1354. This Bryer of Mountes must be the same as the one slain in a sally of the twelve peers, ll. 2604, 2622, because, according to l. 1723, it was he who was among the peers sent on a mission to the Soudan. There is one Bryer of Brytaine occurring in l. 886, whom one might be inclined to think identical with Bryer of Mountes, as in l. 886 he is cited together with the other peers. But since we find him again as the treasurer of Charlemagne (l. 3205), this is impossible, unless we suppose the mention of Bryer in l. 3205 to be owing to the ‹p123› absent-mindedness of the author, who may be accused of a similar inadvertency with regard to Rychard of Normandy; cf. note to l. 2797, and Index of Names, s. v. Flagot.
p. 50, l. 1743. Bronland. The true reading is Brouland, as shewn by Fierabras, ll. 1549, 5174, &c.; Destruction, ll. 1240–159, 441, and Sowdan, ll. 1759, 2456. The Ashmole MS. has Bruyllant.
p. 51, l. 1751. thane = “thane that.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, 992, p. 363.
p. 51, l. 1778. charke hardly makes sense here. It is perhaps a clerical error for charge, “to command, to order.” The sense would then be, “and to tell him the Soudan’s strict orders which by peril of death (= upon life and lithe) Laban recommended him to obey.”
p. 51, l. 1779. þen instead of þan would improve the rhyme.
p. 52, l. 1788. lorde of Spayne. Cf. the French expression, “amirans d’Espaigne,” which we find so often used in the Destruction.
p. 52, l. 1802. trappe is Mod. Eng. trape, which is used in the sense of “to traipse, to walk sluttishly.” Halliwell has “trapes = to wander about.”
p. 52, l. 1816. byleved. Rhyme and sense will be improved by reading byleven.
p. 53, l. 1854. tyme makes no sense here. Perhaps we ought to read I dyne; cf. ll. 1508, 1114, 1837, and Syr Ferumbras, l. 5621:
“Oþer elles þoo shalt þyn hefd forgon,
To morwen, or y wil dyne.”
Fierabras, l. 1914:
“Ja mais ne mengerai si sera desmembrés.”
See also Guy, l. 3695.
p. 54, l. 1888. Syr Gy, nevew unto the king Charles. Cf. Fierabras, ll. 3406–8:
“On m’apele Guion, de Borgoigne fui nés,
Et fils d’une des filles au duc Millon d’Aingler,
Cousin germain Rollant, qui tant fait à douter.”
Duke Milon d’Anglers was brother-in-law to Charlemagne, whose sister Berte was Milon’s wife and mother to Roland. Cf. Philippe Mousket, l. 2706–8:
“S’ot Charles une autre sereur,
Bertain: cele prist à seigneur
Milon d’Anglers, s’en ot Rollant.”
If, therefore, in the passage quoted above from Fierabras, Guy is said to be the grandson of Milon, he must have been the grand-nephew of Charlemagne, and nephew to Rollant. As we learn from the French poem of Guy de Bourgoyne, Guy’s father was Samson of Burgundy. Cf. besides, Histoire Poétique, p. 407, and Syr Ferumbras, ll. 1922, 2091, 1410, etc.
p. 55, l. 1892. And yet knowe I him noght. Floripas has already once ‹p124› seen Guy when he was defeating Lukafer before Rome; cf. Fierabras, ll. 2237–2245:
“.i. chevalier de France ai lontans enamé
Guis a nom de Borgoigne, moult i a bel armé;
Parens est Karlemaine et Rollant l’aduré.
Dès que je fui à Romme, m’a tout mon cuer emblé;
Quant l’amirans mes peres fist gaster la cité,
Lucafer de Baudas abati ens ou pré,
Et lui et le ceval, d’un fort espiel quarré.
Se cis n’est mes maris, je n’arai homme né;
Pour lui voel je croire ou roi de sainte maïsté.”
See also Syr Ferumbras, ll. 2073–2087. Our line does not necessarily imply a contradiction to the French text, as on the former occasion she probably saw the duel from a great distance, when the latter’s features were hidden by his helmet. That she really did not recognize him follows from the following passage of Fierabras, l. 2800, et seq.
“Je aim en douce France .i. leger baceler.”
—“Dame, comment a nom?” ce dist Rollans li her
Et respont la puciele: “ja le m’orrés nommer;
Guis a nom de Borgoigne, moult i a bel armé.”
—“Par mon cief” dist Rollans “à vos ex le véés
N’a pas entre vous deus iiii piés mesurés.”
Besides there are numerous instances to be met with in mediæval poetry of persons enamoured of some one they had never seen:
“Ans no la vi et am la fort”
says Guilhelm de Poitiers in speaking of his lady (Mahn, Werke der Troubadours, p. 3). Cf. also Rits. Rom. II. 19, and Web. Rom. II. 131.
p. 55, l. 1927. myghty seems to mean “excellent, delicious,” rather than “heavy.”
p. 57, l. 1974. amonge, “every now and then, from time to time, occasionally.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, 2301. It is often used as a kind of expletive.
p. 57, l. 1995. foulis, “fools, foolish.” Cf. the French text:
“Par Mahoun, dist li rois, trestout sont fol prové.”
p. 57, l. 1996. There is no mention made of this game in the Provençal poem. It is described here even more explicitly than in the French Fierabras, ll. 2907–2932. Cf. also Syr Ferumbras, ll. 2230–2251.
p. 57, l. 1997. assorte = “assembly, company;” by one assorte = “in one company” (Halliwell). It seems to be connected with sort = “set, assemblage,” see Skeat, Specimens of E. E., 425/999
p. 58, l. 2000. i-fest : blast. Perhaps we ought to read i-fast.
p. 59, l. 2036. maden orders. I do not know the exact meaning of this expression. Perhaps it may be taken with the same sense as the Mod. H. Germ. phrase = “ordnung schaffen,” which literally means ‹p125› “to set in order, to put matters straight,” but is often used in the sense of “to clear away,” or, “to remove or despatch.”
p. 59, l. 2045. that he wente awaye with lym = “that he had escaped with (his limbs, or having) his limbs safe and sound.” lyme, O.E. lim, Mod. Eng. limb.
p. 59, l. 2052. tho = O.E. Þâ, “those, them,” it is used as a definite article in l. 2063.
p. 59, l. 2057. amapide, miswritten for awapide (Herrtage), “astounded, bewildered.” Cf. Stratmann, p. 10.—Mätzner, Wörterbuch, p. 150, connects it with Goth. afhvapjan, “to suffocate.” We find m written for w several times in our poem; thus we read gamylokes for gawylokes in l. 2650, and romme for rowme in l. 876.
p. 60, l. 2085. Assyne. The rhyme shows that Assye is the true reading. Assye occurs in ll. 102, 123.
p. 60, l. 2093. wone, “heap, plenty.” O.Icel. wân. See Zupitza’s note to Guy, p. 444.
p. 61, l. 2119. Brenlande. It ought to be Breuland or Brouland; see above note to l. 1743.
p. 61, l. 2120. The first foot in the line consists of the single word what. Thus in ll. 2288, 2374, 2394, etc.
p. 62, l. 2145. Espyarde. This name only occurs in this poem. In Syr Ferumbras, l. 3824, the messenger sent to the bridge-keeper is called Malyngryas. There is no name mentioned in the French Fierabras, l. 4265.
p. 62, l. 2156. That no man by the brigge. There is no verb in the sentence. Perhaps we ought to read that no man passe by the brigge, or, that no man passe the brigge.
p. 63, l. 2191. Cf. the description of the giant in Fierabras, ll. 4740–4755, and Syr Ferumbras, ll. 4435–4441.
p. 63, l. 2199. nolde not. See note to l. 1096.
p. 64, l. 2225. The line is too long. Wilde can be dispensed with, and instead of horses we may read hors; cf. Skeat, Gloss. to Prioress’s Tale (Clarendon Press), s. v. hors.
p. 64, l. 2233. a magnelle, “a mangonel,” an ancient military engine used for battering down walls (Halliwell). Magnelle is the O.Fr. Mangonel, or Mangoneau, the Italian manganello (= “arbalist, cross-bow”). The latter is the diminutive form of mangano, “a sling;” Greek, μαγγανον. See Diez, Etym. Wörterb., I. 261.
p. 64, l. 2238. Cornel or carnel, Fr. carnel, Mod.Fr. créneau, “battlement, pinnacle.” Literally it means, “a piece carved out,” i. e. of the wall on the top of a building; the French verb carneler or creneler signifying, “to carve out, to jag, to notch.” Carnel is derived from Latin crena (See Diez, Gramm., I. 14), which means “a notch, a cut, an incision” (Diez, Etym. Wörterb., II. 266). Thus carnel came to denote a battlement or indented parapet; or more ‹p126› exactly it was applied to those parts of the wall projecting upwards between the openings or embrasures. It was one of these projecting portions that was here knocked down. Cf. also Syr Ferumbras, l. 3314.
p. 65, l. 2245. The line is too long. Perhaps or he hit may be dispensed with.
p. 65, l. 2247. The episode of Marsedag being slain by Guy is not found in any other poem of this romance.
p. 65, l. 2271. Alkaron, “the Koran,” al is the Arabic article. There is a god named Alcaron occurring in l. 2762.
p. 66, l. 2282. dye : waye. See l. 441. forfamelid = “famished, starved to death.” I am not aware of any other instance of this word. Halliwell has “famele = to be famished.” The prefix for- has intensive or augmentative power; it is particularly used in past participles. See Mätzner’s Grammatik, I2. 542.
p. 66, l. 2290. faile is the infinitive mood = “to be wanting, to become deficient.” “Roland seeing the ladies white and pale (with hunger) and (seeing) the bread wanting on their table spoke some words of lamentation,” etc.
p. 66, l. 2303. forcere, “chest, coffer.” For the etymology see Diez, Wörterb., II. 31, s. v. forziere.
p. 66, l. 2309. As it stands the line is too long. As you and that may be dispensed with, we ought perhaps to read, I pray ye wole us alle it shewe.
p. 66, l. 2310. saule, “fill, hunger satisfied to repletion.” The rhyme shows that the last syllable is accentuated. Therefore it cannot be derived from the French soûl (Gloss. to Roxb. Club ed.), but from soûlée.
p. 66, l. 2311. yede = “went.” Not from O.E. eode, but from ge-eode. See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 60, and Skeat, Piers the Plowman (Clarendon Press), 94/40.
p. 66, l. 2312. vertue : fewe; the rhyme is perfect, see the Abstract of Mr. Nicol’s paper in the Academy of June 23, 1877 (vol. xi. p. 564, col. 1).
p. 66, l. 2313. We must scan this line thus:
-en in diden is mute; see Introduction, p. xxxix.
p. 67, l. 2326. ginne = “engin, contrivance, trick.” See note to l. 780.
p. 67, l. 2337. lefte. The rhyme shows that the author pronounced lafte, which we find in l. 426.
p 68, l. 2351. Cf. Fierabras, ll. 3046–3097. In the Provençal poem Maubyn or Malpi, as he is called in Provençal, enters the room by means of a charm which makes the door open itself: ‹p127›
“Vengutz es al fossat, pres de la tor cayrada.
Tantost intret dedins cuendamens a celada,
Venc a l’us de la cambra: si la trobet tancada.
Et a dit son conjur: tota s’es desfermada.”
ll. 2757–60.
p. 68, l. 2365. The rhyme is restored if we read ledde instead of ladde. See l. 1651.
p. 69, l. 2390. By God and seynte Mary, myn avour. I think the words myn avoure are due to the scribe, not to the author, as they spoil the rhythm. So we get Mary : we. This rhyme, although not perfect, is of no rare occurrence in Mid. Eng. works, see Introduction, p. xliv. As to the spelling of avour I am not aware of any other instance of this form of the word. There is a form avyowre cited by Halliwell. Besides, avoury and avowery, which he quotes under different heads, are perhaps only different spellings of the same word.
p. 69, l. 2399. slepinge must be altered into slepande in order to restore the rhyme. The author employed -and and -ynge as terminations of the present participle. See Introduction, p. xxxviii.
p. 69, l. 2421. also belongs to l. 2422.
p. 70, l. 2433. so mete I spede, “as I may succeed.” See Zupitza’s note to Guy, l. 615.
p. 71, l. 2477. and now is perhaps miswritten for inow; cf. the French text, l. 3803:
“Tant y a plates d’or, nus nes porroit nombrer.”
p. 71, l. 2482. wast gives no sense. Perhaps we ought to read went.
p. 72, ll. 2491–2502. The arrangement of the stanzas seems, as regards the rhymes, to be incorrect.
p. 72, l. 2507. In the Ashmole Ferumbras this episode of the Soudan breaking the image of Mahound is omitted. In the French text he only threatens to make him cry, as soon as he gets hold of him, but he is rebuked by Sorbrance telling him that Mahomet being over-tired with guarding the treasure has only fallen asleep. Cf. Fierabras, ll. 3820–3829.
p. 72, l. 2512. ore, O.E. âr, “mercy, favour.” Thyn ore = “grant us thy favour,” “have mercy upon us,” or, “with thy favour.”
p. 73, l. 2535. Richard of Normandy appearing here as in the French Fierabras, among the twelve peers besieged by the Soudan, without having been mentioned before in the number of the knights sent on a mission by Charles, furnishes us with an argument in support of our supposition that the French Fierabras was the source of our poem. See Introduction, p. xxx, and of Fierabras, ll. 3957–3994, and Syr Ferumbras, l. 4921.
p. 73, l. 2538. wynde : hende; wende which occurs in l. 2328 would improve the rhyme. ‹p128›
p. 73, l. 2549. paramour = “object of chivalrous affection and devotion.”
p. 73, l. 2557. wronge, preterite of wringe, “to press well out, force one’s way.”
p. 73, l. 2558. Does thile stand for while, as then, l. 2527, seems to be miswritten for when? Or is thile = the while?
p. 74, l. 2564. sloughe : drowe. Read slowe, as in ll. 2401, 2683, 304, 2208, etc.
p. 75, l. 2597. itolde, “in number,” see Zupitza’s note to Guy, 1770.
p. 75, l. 2614. quell = “kill,” which occurs in l. 3006.
p. 75, l. 2616. bistadde, “hard bestead, greatly imperilled.”
p. 75, l. 2617. japed, “mocked, tricked, laughed at.” Connected with Icel. gabba, “to mock.”
p. 76, l. 2639. tha. See Introduction, p. xxxvii.
p. 76, l. 2651. lurdeyn, Mod. Eng. lurdan, which is said to be the Fr. lourdin (diminutive of lourd). Regarding it as a corruption of “lord Dane” is a mere joke:
“In every house lord Dane did then rule all,
Whence laysie lozels lurdanes now we call.”
Mirrour for Magistrates, p. 588.
p. 76, l. 2654. sewes. See Skeat, Prioress’s Tale, p. 286.
p. 76, l. 2660. let armes makes no sense. Read as armes—As armes = Fr. aux armes, “to arms,” is of pretty frequent occurrence in Mid. Eng. poems; see Mätzner’s Wörterb., p. 112. Cf. also Syr Ferumbras, l. 2933:
“As armes,” þanne cride Rolond,
“As armes everychone!”
Cf. ibidem, l. 4125. So we read in the Destruction, l. 1460.
“Ore as armes, seignours, franc chevalier membré.”
Perhaps we ought to read as armes also in l. 491, where the reading and armes is somewhat suspicious, since armes, if we regard and armes to be the true reading, would be the only instance of the imperative plural ending in -es (instead of -eth) in the Sowdan.
p. 77, l. 2689. Thay thanked God that thay him hadde Gyfe thaye suche grace to spede. These lines are corrupt. I propose to read:
“Thay thanked God that hem hadde
Gyfen suche grace to spede.”
p. 77, l. 2694. alaye, written as one word in the MS., must be divided into two, a being the indefinite article, and laye meaning “unploughed ground, field, pasture, meadow.” Mod. Eng. ley, lea, lay. See Stratmann, s. v. leȝe, p. 356.
p. 77, l. 2698. he, “they.” This is the only instance of he instead of the common thay. But he, which is further confirmed by the rhyme, must certainly be attributed to the author; thay occurs only once ‹p129› (l. 3021) as a rhyme, but the rhyme is not a good one, and there also it would be preferable to read he.
p. 78, l. 2706. by my thrifte, the same as “so mote y thryve,” or, “so mote y spede” = “as (verily as) I may thrive,” “in truth.”
p. 78, l. 2707. see; cf. Zupitza’s note to Guy, 163.
p. 78, l. 2719. wole : skille. The rhyme shows that wole cannot be due to the author; we must read wille (or welle which occurs l. 2633).
p. 78, l. 2732. bikure or bykeringe, l. 2559 = “fight, battle, skirmish.” Er durste bikure abide. The subject is wanting, see note to l. 67. Or is there any corruption in this line? Perhaps we ought to read: “Lenger durste [thay] no bikure abyde.” Cf. ll. 3117, 2610, 2947.
p. 79, l. 2748. love. The rhyme requires leef or leeve. leef, O.E. leof, means “dear, beloved.” For examples of leef being used as a substantive, see Stratmann, p. 359.
p. 80, l. 2793. eye, “egg.” See Koch, Eng. Gr. II. § 582, and compare the French phrase “valoir un œuf pelé.”
p. 80, l. 2797. and his meyne. This must be a mistake of the author himself. According to l. 2557, Richard had ventured alone on a mission to Charlemagne. There is no mention whatever made afterwards that he was joined by any one; the other poems likewise state that Richard was without any companion.
p. 80, l. 2805. lete : gate. The rhyme requires late.
p. 81, l. 2810. cliffe. Here the author of the Sowdan goes so far in shortening his original as to be wholly unintelligible. Indeed, any reader, not comparing these lines with corresponding passages in the French poem, will be left without any clue to what cliff is here intended to mean. From the French Fierabras we know that the water of the river was very deep and broad, and that the banks were exceedingly steep and almost inaccessible. Cf. Fierabras, ll. 4349:
“Et voit l’augue bruiant, le flot parfont et lé.”
l. 4358: “La rive en est moult haute, bien fait à redouter.” Cf. also the Provençal poem, ll. 3733, et seq.:
“Richart regarda l’aygua, que fe mot a duptar,
E fo grans e preonda, que no y auza intrar,
E la riba fou auta de C pes ses gaber.”
Now it was by means of a twofold myracle that the Christian knight was enabled to cross the river:
(1) The waters suddenly increased and rose so as to reach the very top of the banks; cf. Fierabras, ll. 4365–69:
“Or oiés quel vertu Diex i vaut demonstrer
Por le roi Karlemaine, qui tant fait à douter.
Ançois que on ëust une liuée alé,
Veïssiés si Flagot engroissier et enfler,
Que par desous la rive commence à seronder.”
Provençal, ll. 3741–45: ‹p130›
“Ara podetz auzir, si m voletz escoutar:
Tan bela meravilha li volc dieus demostrar
Per lo bon rey de Fransa que el volc tant amar;
Ans un trag de balesta pogues lunhs hom anar,
Pogratz vezer Flagot sus la riba montar.”
(2) A deer appears and shows Richard the way across the river to the top of the opposite bank.
“Atant es vous .i. cerf, que Diex i fist aler,
Et fu blans comme nois, biaus fu à resgarder.
Devant le ber Richart se prent à demostrer,
Devant lui est tantost ens en Flagot entrés.
Li dus voit Sarrazins après lui aroutés,
S’il ot paour de mort ne fait à demander.
Après le blance bisse commencha à errer
Tout ainsi com ele vait, lait le ceval aler;
Et li ciers vait devant, qui bien s’i sot garder,
D’autre part à la rive se prent à ariver.”
Cf. also the Provençal version, ll. 3751–54:
“Apres la blanca bestia laycha ’l destrier anar.
E lo cer vay denan, que l saup mot ben guizar,
De l’autra part de l’aygua l’a fayt ben aribar,
E dieus a fayt Flagot en son estat tornar.”
This bank which formerly was steep and inaccessible, but is now covered with water, is called cliff by our poet. In the Ashmolean poem the first miracle is not mentioned; cf. Syr Ferumbras, ll. 3943, et seq.
p. 81, l. 2811. he blessed him in Godis name. The phrase occurs also in Syr Ferumbras, l. 3961, but is not to be found in the French text. Mr. John Shelley (in his paper printed in the Annual Report and Transactions of the Plymouth Institution, IV. i. 71) took this phrase as a proof that the original of the Sowdan could not have been the French poem. But it must be stated that as in the Sowdan, l. 2807, so in the French version Richard is said to have addressed a prayer to God:
“Escortrement commence Jhesu à reclamer:
Glorieus sire pere, qui te laissas pener
En la crois beneoite pour ton pule sauver,
Garisiés hui mon cors de mort et d’afoler,
Que je puisse Karlon mon message conter.”
Fierabras, ll. 4360–64.
If now we consider that some lines back (l. 4093) the French poem expressively states that Richard seeing himself hard pressed by the Saracens, signed himself with the sign of the cross—
“Lors a levé sa main, de Jhesu s’est signiés”
an incident which at that moment is omitted in the Sowdan—we think ourselves entitled to regard this proof as not very convincing.
p. 81, l. 2820. Ganelon, one of Charlemagne’s officers, who by his treachery was the cause of the defeat of Roncesvaux, the death of Roland, etc., for which he was torn to death by horses. For ‹p131› several centuries his name was a synonymous word with traitor. Ganelo = Germ. Wenhilo.
p. 81, l. 2845. Fremounde cannot be the true reading, as it does not rhyme with kinge. Besides Fremounde does not occur again in the poem. Perhaps we ought to read Qwyntyne, as in l. 1298. In the corresponding passage of the French Fierabras (l. 4625) it is to St. Denis that Charles swears; cf. also Syr Ferumbras, l. 4289.
p. 82, l. 2850. And makes no sense. Read “God.”
p. 83, l. 2887. gryse : assaye. We get a perfect rhyme if we read gray instead of gryse. Halliwell, s. v. “gray,” has: “the skin or fur of a badger.”
p. 83, l. 2891. As it stands, the line does not rhyme with l. 2893. The rhyme will be restored if we read:
“Lycence gete ye noone nere,” or perhaps
“Lycence gete ye of me nere,”
nere meaning ne’er, never, as in Guy, 10550 and 10716.
p. 84, l. 2939. The name of the giantess is Amiette or Amiote in the other poems.
p. 84, l. 2941. This line is too long; as þikke may be omitted.
p. 84, l. 2942. bydene, “immediately, all at once.” On the etymology see Zupitza’s note to Guy, 2408.
p. 85, l. 2981. ayene means “back.” So in Genesis and Exodus, l. 1097:
“And bodem hem and tagten wel
ðat here non wente agen.”
Again, l. 3267:
“ðo quoðen he ‘wende agen,
An israel folc lete we ben.’”
p. 86, l. 3020. As it stands, this line does not scan well. Perhaps we may read month instead of monthes, and childre instead of children, and scan the line thus:
p. 87, l. 3021. thay : Normandy. The rhyme, though imperfect, cannot be objected to; but as the rhyme e : y (i) is frequently employed by our author (see Introduction, p. xliv), and was of rather common use about that period (see Ellis, Pronunciation, I. 271), we might incline to the supposition that he is the true reading. Cf. besides l. 2698.
p. 87, l. 3034. mene makes no sense. Perhaps we ought to read: mete, “food.”
p. 87, l. 3044. In the French poem, l. 5108, Hoel and Riol are appointed governors of Mantrible, whereas Richard goes on with Charles and commands one of the divisions of his army (l. 5577). Cf. Syr Ferumbras, l. 5643.
p. 88, l. 3062. coost, “country, region.” See Mätzner’s Wörterb., 487.
p. 88, l. 3084. In the Fierabras, l. 5374, it is Naymes who first recognizes the banner of France; cf. Syr Ferumbras, l. 5209. ‹p132›
p. 89, l. 3098. of the Ethiopes = “some of the Ethiopians.” This may be regarded as an example of the partitive use of of. Cf. Zupitza’s note to Guy, 1961.
p. 89, l. 3103. alto hewe must be more correctly written al to-hewe;—to-, as a mere prefix (signifying “in twain, asunder, apart” = Germ. zer) belongs essentially to the verb; the intensive adverb al (= “utterly, omnino,”) used before verbs beginning not only with to-, but also before other prefixes, still further strengthens, and belongs to, the whole expression. So al to-treden, l. 1382, to-braste, l. 1168.
p. 89, l. 3122. Belmore. Perhaps identical with Belmarine.
p. 90, l. 3130. wode-wroth, “madly angry.” Cf. Skeat, Specimens of Early Eng. Lit., 80/37.
p. 90, l. 3141. game, “sport, joke, affair.”
p. 90, l. 3154. hat, “be called.” See note, l. 613.
p. 91, l. 3164. bronde, “sword.” In the next line bronte means “blow, stroke.”
p. 91, l. 3189. lande : commaunde. See note, l. 59.
p. 91, l. 3191. The rhyme is spoiled. Perhaps than must be transposed so that we get the rhyme baptysed : imaryed.
p. 92, l. 3210. there to abide in store = “to be kept in store”; cf. Skelton, ed. Dyce, I. 162, 221.
p. 92, l. 3227. victory = “booty, spoils of victory, trophy.”
p. 92, l. 3232. the hyer honde to have = “to have conquered or vanquished.” The same phrase is found in M. H. G.; cf. Hartmann’s Iwein, ed. Lachmann, l. 1537–8:
“Vrou Minne nam die obern hant,
daz sî in vienc unde bant.”
p. 93, l. 3236. In the French Fierabras, l. 6082, et seq., and in the Provençal poem, l. 5067, et seq., the relics are distributed as follows: Part of the crown and one nail to St. Denis, and “li signes,” the winding-sheet of the Lord, to Compiègne. There is no mention made of the cross in the French poem (see note to l. 665); cf. Introd. pp. l and liv.
p. 93, l. 3253. According to the Chanson de Roland, Ganelon has been drawn and quartered in a field near Aix-la-Chapelle.
p. 94, l. 3254. By lawe, cf. Syr Ferumbras, l. 307: “As for traytours ȝaf þe lawe.” On this law compare Léon Gautier’s note to l. 3736 of the Chanson de Roland.
p. 95, l. 3274. The French poem ends with the assertion of the poet (or the scribe) that whoever has well listened to this romance will find every part of it good and excellent, the opening, the middle, and the end:
“De cest roumant est boine et la fin et l’entree,
Et enmi et partout, qui bien l’a escoutée.”
O.E. = Old English or Anglo Saxon.
O.Fr. = Old French.
32/1094 = page 32, line 1094.
Original printed spelling and grammar has been retained, with some exceptions noted below. The middle English characters “ȝ”, “Þ”, “ð”, and “þ” were originally printed always upright, not italic, but in this edition have been rendered as italic wherever that seems appropriate, as in this sentence from page xxxvii: “That or þat, who, whome are used as relative pronouns”. The transcriber created the cover image and hereby assigns it to the public domain.
No widely supported unicode characters are available for the following, which have therefore been rendered herein as images: , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , and .
The poem The Romounce of the Sowdone, beginning on page 1, has sidenotes which contain a running synopsis of the play in modern English. In the printed book, these notes were broken into segments which were positioned so as to correspond more or less accurately to the lines of the play. For this edition, the synopsis notes have been rewrapped to fit within an allotted space, but are still aligned more or less accurately with the lines of the play. The sidenotes also contain page references to the original manuscript from which the play was transcribed, for example “[leaf 3]”. These have been kept aligned with the correct line of the poem, in this case, line 80.
Page vi: Pantragruel was changed to Pantagruel.
Page xxv: “346, 4902, the name of the giant” is changed to “346, 2944, 3022, the name of the giant”. This error occurs also in the Index of Names, see below.
Page xlvii: A new heading has been inserted—“MS. OF THE SOWDAN”—to match the table of contents. The original text showed only a horizontal rule here.
Page 2: “amirals” changed to “admirals”, in the sidenote.
Page 9, l. 289: the left quotation mark has no mate in the printed book. A right double quotation mark has been inserted at the end of l. 291.
Page 10, l. 313: the left quotation mark has no mate in the printed book. A right double quotation mark has been inserted at the end of l. 323.
Page 11, ll. 369, 370: In the original book, there was a blank line shown between lines 369 and 370. This has been marked herein with a border to distinguish it from other lines which may appear blank in this ebook due to variable user hardware, software, and settings.
Page 23, l. 755: the left quotation mark has no mate in the printed book. A right double quotation mark has been inserted at the end of l. 766.
Page 27, l. 895: the left quotation mark has no mate in the printed book. A right double quotation mark has been inserted at the end of l. 910.
Page 31, l. 1059: the left quotation mark has no mate in the printed book. A right double quotation mark has been inserted at the end of l. 1074.
Page 36: In sidenote “They fight for a considerable time the blood”, added semicolon between time and blood.
Page 46: In the sidenotes, full stop was added after “dashed out his brains”, and “feeding he prisoners” was changed to “feeding the prisoners”.
Page 47: The first footnote had no label number; a number has been inserted to correspond to the footnote anchor on line 1615.
Page 59, l. 2063: the left quotation mark was unmatched. A new right double quotation mark is inserted at the end of l. 2066, after ‘there-ate.’.
Page 64, l. 2243: the left quotation mark before ‘beitħ’ was unmatched; a new right quotation mark is inserted at the end of line 2246.
Page 66, l. 2307: the left quotation mark ahead of ‘my loue’ was unmatched. A new right quotation mark is inserted at the end of l. 2310.
Page 68, l. 2380: the left quotation mark seems to be unmatched in the printed text. A new matching right quotation mark is inserted at the end of line 2390.
Page 69: There were two footnote anchors, but only one footnote. Very likely, although the footnote anchors are independent, the footnote text “See the note.” applies equally to both. In this edition, a second footnote has been inserted to correspond to the second footnote anchor.
Page 87, l. 3021: Poem says “xiiij”; sidenote says “4”; both retained.
Page 96, under “p. 2, l. 26. bokes of antiquyte.” The printed text provides a reference to Gautier, Epop. Fr., II. 87, which is retained herein. However, a member of the Distributed Proofreaders team has pointed out that the reference should have been to Les épopées françaises. Étude sur les origines et l’histoire de la littérature nationale, I. 87 (1865). This book is available from archive.org, filename “lespopesfran01gautuoft”.
Page 99: in “p. 8, l. 84. tithynge.”, changed “8,” to “3,”.
Page 113: “p. 35, l. 1060” changed to “p. 31, l. 1060”.
Page 120: “p. 44, l. 1538” changed to “p. 44, l. 1539”.
Page 121: In the line “Sire drois emperere, pour amour Dieu. oiés”, the full stop after Dieu was changed to comma, in agreement with the text available at archive.org filed under “fierabraschanso00servgoog”.
Page 123: The range of line numbers in “Destruction, ll. 1240–159” does not seem to make sense, but is retained. The line ‘“Ja mais ne mengerai si sera desmembrés.’’ was changed to ‘“Ja mais ne mengerai si sera desmembrés.”’.
Page 125: In “p. 59, l. 2045. that he wente awaye with lym = “that he had escaped with (his limbs, or having) his limbs safe and sound. lyme, O.E. lim., Mod. Eng. limb.”, a right double quotation mark was inserted after ‘sound.’, and “lim.,” was changed to “lim,”.
Glossary, “nather, 36/1232”. Line 1232 spells it “nathir”; both forms are retained.
Glossary, “then, 46/1593”. Line 1593 spells it “the”; both forms are retained.
Index of Names, “Astrogot, or Estragot”. The printed references “ll. 3944, 4902” are changed to “ll. 2944, 3022”.
The following index of links to pages and Sowdone of Babylone poem lines is provided for convenience. Clicking on any page number in the book will bring the user here.
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Romaunce of The Sowdone of Babylone and of Ferumbras his , by Anonymous *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROMAUNCE OF THE SOWDONE *** ***** This file should be named 48531-h.htm or 48531-h.zip ***** This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: http://www.gutenberg.org/4/8/5/3/48531/ Produced by Meredith Bach, RichardW, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries) Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be renamed. Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. *** START: FULL LICENSE *** THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at www.gutenberg.org/license. Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United States. 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, copied or distributed: This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project Gutenberg-tm License. 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm works. - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of receipt of the work. - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. 1.F. 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further opportunities to fix the problem. 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from people in all walks of life. Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive and Director [email protected] Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with the IRS. The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who approach us with offers to donate. International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: www.gutenberg.org This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.